|
楼主 |
发表于 2009-8-16 17:26| 字数 367,984
|
显示全部楼层
Wolf - Part VI: Saviour of the Wizarding World
There Are Always Victims, and Sometimes We Care by colibri
Disclaimer: The world of Harry Potter, its characters and settings are the copyrighted works of J.K. Rowling, Warner Bros., her publishing companies and affiliates. No profit was made from the writing of this story nor was any malice intended in any way, shape or form to the author or the actors/actresses who so brilliantly have brought them to life. My versions of Rowling's characters would never be sanctioned, but I love them all the same.
Thank you, Erin, my wonderful Beta!! Thanks, also, to Flick for your help.
This is the final piece in a six-part series and will make no sense at all without reading the preceding five parts.
In addition to the above warnings, the following apply: mild drugs use, references to significant drugs use and ambiguous consent, melodrama, and extreme sluttiness.
Part VI – Saviour of the Wizarding World
Chapter 1: There Are Always Victims, and Sometimes We Care
He's uncertain how he got here—doesn't remember, really. Nor does he know where here is. There's only one thing of any import now, and that's the pain. It is great and multifaceted, including the stench of burnt flesh and tenderness of new skin, as well as ripping exhaustion and a drilling agony in his skull. But then there is the scent of Draco Malfoy close enough to kiss. "I'm in the hospital wing, aren't I," Harry rasps and remembers everything. After that, it takes very little deductive reasoning to figure that he has not been here very long at all. He heals much too quickly for that.
"Yes," says Draco and moves to sit on the bed next to Harry's legs. Harry had forgotten how handsome Draco is.
"Where's Lucius?"
Draco scowls. "How the bloody fuck should I know?" He looks into Harry's face for a moment, then winces and looks away again. "And why do you care?"
"He helped me," Harry says.
"Your eyes are black, Harry."
Harry bleeds them back to green again. "Better?"
Draco sighs. "I thought it was permanent."
"Tactics," Harry says. "How long have I been here?"
"About an hour," Draco says, then scoots himself a bit further up the bed, closer to Harry's face. "Your skin is healing at a remarkable rate." Suddenly all business.
"Lycanthropy. Don't fight the Dark Lord without it."
"Er…right," Draco agrees, but not without irony.
"I killed him, did you see?"
"Yes, Harry. No need to gloat."
"No need?" Harry's eyebrows shoot up but it hurts, so he relaxes his facial muscles again. "I should think I've earned the right to gloat."
"I'd say that simply means the potion Snape and I concocted was a smashing success." The potion that bound Voldemort inside his corporeal form. And it had been a smashing success. Of course, it had been Harry's idea...mostly. "Well, I suppose if I can show off my Latin, you can gloat about having offed the Dark Lord. But I won't pretend to actually care, no matter how much I love you."
Both of them realise what he has said at the same time, and both look away in embarrassment. Both, also, seem to decide almost immediately to pretend the words had never been uttered.
"Er…" Harry says. "It's remarkable, I think…the way Voldemort didn't once use silver against me."
Draco jumps at the segue. "Really," he sounds fascinated. "None of us are accustomed to thinking about silver in that way. When I look at the changes in you, it's hardly the wolf I think about," Draco admits.
A courtesy knock sounds upon the door, and they both start guiltily, then look relieved. Remus Lupin enters a moment later. "Harry, you're awake," he says with relief, then gives a courteous nod and adds, "Mr Malfoy."
"Mr Lupin," Draco returns, his possessiveness a scent Harry has missed.
"Hi, Remus. How was your change?"
"Same as always," Remus says and goes to Harry's side, opposite Draco. He also sits down on the bed, though he dares to take one of Harry's scorched hands in his own. He has a better idea of how quickly Harry heals. It barely hurts. "I'm exhausted," and he looks it.
"I've decided you fight your change too hard," Harry offers. "It never takes as much out of me as it does of you, and that's even when I've been tortured. You're perpetually run down."
"I'm not as strong as you, Harry. My magic is weaker and my Lycanthropy is weaker. I don't heal as quickly as you do, and I believe that even my affinity for the shape is lower. I fight my form even during the change. For you, however, it is…natural."
"Because of my Animagus form…." Remus must have found out. It does make sense that Remus would. But there were so many secrets before this little adventure, Harry can't even keep track of which secrets have been told to whom.
"Yes," Remus agrees.
"Where are the others?" Harry asks.
"Cleaning up the Manor," says Draco. "There were apparently a few Lestranges hanging about, and there was some sort of fire."
"Did they not find your father?"
"Not that I know of."
"He Apparated out once they realised he was helping me."
Draco snorts. "Helping Harry Potter. And however did they deduce that?"
"Not sure," Harry admits. "I think he attacked Voldemort when Voldemort cast Cruciatus on me while Rodolphus was fucking me last night."
"What?" exclaims Lupin. "But last night was the transformation,” he says, obviously confused.
"A new brand of torture," Harry explains. "It was indeed unpleasant, but not as bad as the regular torture sessions and frankly, Lucius's expeditious departure distracted Voldemort enough that he grew tired of torturing me and simply put me to bed."
"Why did Father help you?" Draco asks, obviously baffled, now that he's actually started to believe it.
"Because I brainwashed him into loving me," Harry says matter-of-factly. "When he came here to visit, he got Snape to give him your necklace. Hey!" Harry shifts easily into wolf form and is delighted to find the pain of transformation does not carry over into his Animagus change. That much, at least, remains unchanged. Lucius! Can you hear me? He calls, but there is no answer. He tries again a few more times, but then switches back to human. "He’s not answering. I don't even know if he's still wearing it."
"Don't concern yourself, Harry," says Draco, trying to pretend that he doesn't care. "I can't believe he was here with me and we were both pretending to be on the Dark Lord's side. It's beyond irony."
Harry is not sure what to say, but there is another knock on the door anyway. This time, Ron, Hermione, and Dumbledore all enter, though Dumbledore only beams and twinkles, while Hermione rushes to Harry's side, in front of Draco, to give Harry a kiss on either cheek. "Oh Harry!" she exclaims. "You're all right!"
"Of course, or I believe you would have known already." Harry is confused, though. "Was the Young Order fighting at the Manor?"
Ron nods. "Most of the staff needed to stay here to protect the students who remained, just in case. So it was mostly the Young Order along with several aurors."
"Mr Potter, Mr Malfoy, Remus," says Dumbledore in greeting.
"Headmaster," says Remus, standing respectfully.
Draco doesn't bother. "Professor," he and Harry offer in tandem.
"I allowed Mr Weasley and Miss Granger to visit for a moment, but I'm afraid I need to speak with Mr Potter and Mr Malfoy in private, now.”
Hermione gives Harry a final embrace, murmuring a quiet, "We're so glad for you, Harry, and to have you back," before moving off to give Ron space. He takes Harry's hand briefly, gently, and says, "You'll have to tell us how you did it, eh?" before he and Hermione exit the room. Lupin leans down to give Harry a kiss on either cheek but says nothing before he, too, departs. And then they are alone with the Headmaster.
"I'm afraid I have unfortunate news," says Dumbledore, his face suddenly grave, his eyes no longer twinkling. He looks tired and old, which he is. It is discomfiting nonetheless, and Harry already knows what this bad news would have to be. There is too little he cares about left, and besides, he has a feeling. "Mr Malfoy, I'm afraid your father did not survive today's confrontations. It appears that he was killed in a duel with Rodolphus Lestrange—a duel which neither of them survived."
Draco goes rigid, but otherwise, shows no sign of having heard…until he speaks. "Is his body intact?" Draco asks, and Harry just cannot imagine what Draco is thinking.
"It is," Dumbledore confirms. "He was hit with the Killing Curse. Rodolphus Lestrange seems to have died from injuries sustained through immolation."
Draco nods. "Good. Has my mother been found?"
"Two aurors have been dispatched to return her to the manor in Wiltshire," Dumbledore assures.
"I'll need to leave immediately," says Draco and stands. Easter Hols don't end until Monday and today is only Saturday. Harry feels like he's been out of classes for at least a year.
"May I go?" Harry asks, more to Draco than the headmaster.
"No," says Draco and nods politely at Dumbledore before exiting the hospital wing.
Harry sighs. "He blames me." Harry puts a cool hand to his warmer forehead and covers his eyes. "I knew he would blame me, and I didn't even want Lucius dead."
"You understand better than most, Harry—what it is like to lose someone you love. Blame does not always fall where it should."
Harry knows, but he also knows that he blamed Snape for an awfully long time for Sirius's death. Harry doesn't want Draco to take that long. "I think I should like to leave the hospital wing, now," Harry decides, though he is feeling a lethargy coming on. A listlessness. It is better he leaves now, before he can no longer muster the energy to do so.
"I should think Madam Pomfrey would like to examine you before allowing you to go," Dumbledore cautions, the twinkle back.
Harry blinks, still serious. He does not feel like smiling, nor seeing others even remotely happy. "Lucius loved me," he says.
"I know, Harry…" and Dumbledore scrutinises him for nearly a full minute before speaking again. "Did you love him as well, Harry?"
"I cared for him." It is the closest Harry can get to an answer. "I am…very sad…" Harry adds after some thought, "and disappointed…by his death." Truer words could not be spoken. "Lucius was mine—he was not Rodolphus Lestrange's to kill," and that is, in the end, the final truth of it.
"It is a difficult thing—to find a balance, Harry. For a wizard as powerful as you, it will be even more difficult."
"A balance," Harry says, and thinks about it. A balance in the way he deals with others, he supposes. In the way that he treats people. In the way he uses his magic. He'd overstepped the bounds of propriety when he took Lucius Malfoy in desperation. But he'd weighed the balance between Lucius's will and his own life, and chose the latter. He does not regret it, even now that Lucius is dead. "Do you have difficulty maintaining that balance?" Harry asks the headmaster.
"All the time." Dumbledore looks sad, but hopeful. There is a little smile playing about his lips. "I've found dealing with you and the situation with Voldemort impossible to balance. I failed in so very many ways. In the end, I decided to stop manipulating and allow you to do what you would—your luck has always been extraordinary. In the end, your manoeuvring brought our side to victory, not mine. I needed only support your machinations, and curb my natural tendency to…meddle."
Harry doesn’t really want to think about it much more right now. He's thought about it quite a lot already. "Did anyone happen to find my wand?" he asks, not really hopeful.
Dumbledore's eyes light up. "Ah, yes," he says and reaches into a pocket of his robe. He pulls out a parchment. "This was found on Lucius's person by one of the aurors,” he explains as he hands it to Harry. "Warded, so that only you would be able to open it," he adds unnecessarily.
Harry accepts the roll and pulls the scroll open, then pushes with his magic, to allow the scroll to lie flat. He takes the wand that was rolled in the paper, then begins to read.
Dearest Harry,
If you are reading this missive, then the unfortunate outcome I have been preparing for these last days has come to pass, and I have been killed through one circumstance or another. It is a shame, at least in my eyes, that I have never been able to share a carefree time with you—to whisk you away to decadence or innocent delights, in this lovely country or in others. I have never even had you in my own rooms. It only makes the hatred I feel for He Who Must Not Be Named boil even hotter in my veins. I hope that my death was in your aid, and in aid of the battle against him.
There is no way I can express to you the love I feel, but I am contented because I know that you understand it already—it was you who made it, after all. I wish to remind you that I know this, and that it pleases me. It feels no less real to me because it was fabricated, and I cannot but be pleased to have felt it, and to have felt it for you. I could not have wished for a better wizard to love. It is because of this love, and the realisation of your virtue (which was really only a setting aside of my own prejudices and hatred as created by Him), that I have made the preparations that I have made for my death. They are not many, but I felt them absolutely necessary. One was purely vanity, the other, more practical.
For the first, I had a new portrait of myself commissioned, and sat for it earlier today. It should be completed by the time you read this letter. It was purely for vanity's sake, but I wished for the Lucius Malfoy remembered by posterity to be the Lucius Malfoy who knows the love and joy, the compassion and sadness you have taught me—not the bitter, evil sadist who wished only to destroy you, and who destroyed his own wife and child as he followed his Dark dreams and Lord.
For the second, I have had my Probate solicitor amend my will—to add you.
"What??!" Harry exclaims and looks up at the Headmaster, who is still standing there, waiting for him, Harry supposes.
However, the Headmaster does not, it seems, know what is going on. "Surprising news, then?" he asks.
"I think Draco will have a fit," Harry mutters, then goes back to reading.
For the second, I have had my Probate solicitor amend my will—to add you. Though I do not approve of my son's choices regarding whom he wishes to follow, I accept responsibility for teaching him the values that have led him to this place. I can only hope that you will succeed in ridding the world of the Dark Lord as I am certain you are fated to do, no matter how bleak the current situation. I can only hope that Draco will learn the power of Light, and the danger of the path he has chosen. In the end, he remains my only son and heir, and I love him dearly; I will provide for him as well as I can, and in the only way I know how to do, and it shall be generous.
For my wife, I have only sympathy and sadness. She was once a complete woman, with beauty and intelligence, a free will and a clear mind. She was strong and ambitious, and every bit as ruthless as I. Still, our roles were such that it was she who was trod over, and she who retreated until she was but a shadow of the woman I married but did not love enough. I will provide for her to continue the life she is accustomed to leading, for she can no longer provide for herself, and because I do care for her, still.
The rest, I leave to you.
I can hardly bear to set aside this quill, Harry, because I miss you, and wish I were able to speak to you. But I must go, now, and continue the loathsome chores set me by my chosen master. As you read this, know that I loved you, and shall love you forever. Know that you have brought me happiness and a bit of redemption before my death.
Yours,
Lucius Malfoy
Harry sighs and rolls the letter up again. He pushes the guilt to the back of his mind. He shrinks the parchment with a thought, then transfigures it to steel and shapes it into a ring. He then holds it to his ear and murmurs, "Transadigo Cutis." I will keep this forever, as a reminder of you, he thinks, then looks to Dumbledore and says, "Thank you."
Dumbledore nods. "You are looking much better, Harry. The burns are nearly healed. Shall I have Madam Pomfrey examine you?"
Harry nods and says, "Yes, please."
* * *
He is back in his rooms not thirty minutes later and finds, much to his shock, Draco sitting on their bed, hands hiding his face.
"Draco?" Harry asks from where he stands against the closed door of his room.
"I want so much to hate you, Harry Potter," Draco whispers, and his voice sounds broken, though if he has been weeping, he does so no more.
"It's my fault, for making him love me," Harry says, to prove that he understands. "He died because he couldn't bear to see me suffer without a champion. He died because I could not be honest with him. He died because I brainwashed him."
"You turned him into a Gryffindor!" Draco yells, and it's absurd, but on one level, it's nearly true. "You turned him into a bloody image of you: noble and selfless and full of love! Willing to sacrifice himself for a boy he had always hated before. It's…it's…."
"Evil?" Harry offers.
"It certainly seems Dark!" Draco agrees.
"I know," Harry says. "He knew as well."
"It hardly matters. He was already in love with you by then!"
Harry nods.
"Did you get an earring? Since I left? Or is that something that happened to you at the Manor?" Draco is rarely distracted in this way—he is so distraught, he is barely functioning properly. It hurts Harry in a way he never would have expected, to see Draco like this.
"It's your father's final letter to me," he explains, quietly. "I'll keep it with me forever," and he shrugs. Not much else can be said about it. "I understand that you hate me, Draco."
"No, you don't." Draco stands and begins to pace back and forth before the bed, in front of Harry. "Because I don't hate you. I only wish I did. I want to hate you. I want to avenge my father's death, but everyone is dead already, except for you!"
"Are they?"
Draco sighs and sits again. "Yeah." He deflates, then changes the subject a little. "I must attend the reading of the will."
Harry nods.
"As must you," Draco says. Harry hadn't known that Draco knew that, but Draco holds up a sheet of parchment he has just pulled from his pocket. "My mother, myself, and you."
"I expected more," Harry admits.
"My father was never a particularly generous man," says Draco without any sort of judgment, really. "I still can't fathom that he added you."
"I would like to see his new portrait," Harry says.
"New portrait?" Draco does not know.
"In the letter," Harry says and pulls lightly on his new earring, "he said he commissioned a new portrait of himself."
Draco snorts, but the briefest flicker of confused loss shows in his eyes and mouth before it disappears again. "We’ll go Monday," he says, "but for now, I must attend my mother."
Harry nods his understanding but shows neither sadness nor loneliness. He watches Draco leave his rooms, then remembers a promise he had made to himself. He makes his way to the en-suite, uses a gentle Scourgify on his hair, then brushes it all back. He braids it tightly and binds it top and bottom with black cords. A quick thought later the braid comes off intact, long and thick and heavy. Harry's head feels pounds lighter, and his neck stretches in freedom. He banishes the braid to his trunk, then searches through Draco's belongings in the medicine chest until he has found the Sleekeasy's Hair Potion. His hair now falls about his face, so he wills the ends even, then uses some of the potion to slick his hair back.
He calls for Dobby to do him the favour of bringing supper to his rooms, then eats in ringing silence. It is almost a relief to change into his wolf form and fall into timeless waiting. He immerses himself in the comforting scent of Draco in his sheets, then drops into slumber.
Celebrity by colibri
Chapter 2: Celebrity
Harry awakens on Sunday wishing he were someone else, despite everything. He is healthy, Voldemort is dead, and…well, there's not much else he could realistically have wished for. He regains his human form, then showers and dresses in his rattiest jeans and a black t-shirt. Then, it is off to brunch, where he will seek out company, for once.
There is quite a crowd this morning, as the students have mostly returned from break—likely to get a running start on the testing season, also known as Summer Term. It's become almost comforting for Harry, how the Great Hall will occasionally go silent upon his entrance. This morning, he's not entirely certain what the root cause of the silence is, though he initially suspects it's his hair.
"Oi, Harry!" Ron whispers harshly, and though Harry would have no difficulty hearing it had it been whispered softly, he would guess that in this case, most of the Gryffindors and some of the Hufflepuffs had heard it as well.
Harry is all right with that. "Oi, Ron!" Harry shoots back, roughly mimicking Ron's dialect. He plops himself down at the table across from the lovebirds, (who are not drooling on each other this morning, so that is worth something, at least. Not that they are normally drooling on each other). "All right?"
"What th' bloody hell happened, mate!?"
"Er…I thought it was time for a change?" Ron could use a trim himself, frankly.
"Well, billions of wizards have thought it was time for that kind of change now, haven't they? But that's not usually enough, is it?"
"I suppose most would take a bit more care about it than I did," Harry admits, "but it's rather my speciality, isn't it? I mean, the Dursleys have always hated me for it, and I was doing it then without even knowing how—though in reverse, I suppose. I mean, making it re-grow instead of cutting it off."
Ron blinks once, then again, and is then distracted by Hermione's most uncharacteristic snort. "Priceless," she says with a wide smile.
"What?" asks Ron, already prepared to grow indignant.
"Harry's talking about his hair," she says.
Ron looks instantly confused.
"And Ron was, of course, referring to your final duel with Voldemort," Hermione adds, though that is now unnecessary. Harry is…well, embarrassed enough to go scarlet.
"Yes, right," Harry agrees, then reaches for a ladleful of oatmeal porridge.
"You, er, cut off your hair?"
"Oh, you noticed?" asks Harry, tongue-in-cheek, though he manages not to laugh.
"Well it's still long, isn't it?" Back to defensiveness. Ron is so predictable that way. "And slicked back that way, it's hard to tell how long it is."
"Of course, Ron," Harry agrees. "I wasn't complaining, you know. Perhaps I prefer it if you don't notice how I'm looking at any particular time. You know, it can be difficult, constantly primping for the masses."
"I would guess that primping for one Draco Malfoy is far more difficult," says Hermione before taking a long, appreciative sip of her tea—Earl Grey, milk, sugar. The bergamot is unmistakable. "He must not be here."
"Correct again. You’ve always had more than your fair share of deductive reasoning skills, my dearest 'Mione."
"Oh just shut it!" Ron hisses in exasperation. "Could you please tell me what happened, Harry? With the duel?"
"Oh," says Harry, who had already forgotten the original question. "We duelled; I won, obviously." He's still not entirely certain he's allowed to say more than this. But…to 'Mione and Ron? He'd tell them everything now, if they were alone. But they are not, and from the scents, everyone else is extremely interested in what Harry has to say. "He's dead now," he adds, as if that is what Ron has been waiting to hear. "Perhaps you two should keep me company this evening, since Draco's still away," he hints.
"Of course, Harry!" says Hermione before Ron has a chance to say anything stupid. "We can come with after we eat, right, Ron?"
Ron just nods, sulking. He's chewing on a bite of sausage but his heart isn't in it. Harry thinks Ron's heart may soon be drowning in it, with all the crap Ron eats. Of course, Ron does exercise a good bit more than Harry does. Harry finishes his own meal, then waits for the others, so that they can go to his rooms and he can tell the story in privacy.
* * *
"You've been doing complex, wandless magic? All this time?" Ron asks, still stuck at that section of Harry's story.
"But…how do you aim properly, without a wand?" Hermione asks, obviously very intrigued.
"One needn't aim so much as will a certain effect to take place at a certain location. The magic you are manipulating needn't even come entirely from you. Only the catalysing magic—the magic that sets the action or reaction in motion."
"Wandless, wordless magic?" says Ron.
"But…how do you keep from doing magic all the time? If it's simply a matter of wishing for something to happen?"
"It's not simply a matter of anything, really," Harry clarifies. "I must maintain a much higher level of control over myself and my thoughts than I ever had to when I was using a wand."
"How long have you been…not using your wand?" asks Ron.
"Almost since the beginning of fall term."
"And that's how you beat Voldemort?" asks Ron.
"Well, yes, because they had taken my wand as soon as I arrived at the manor, and so stealthily, I hadn't even known it was missing. Luckily, I've been going through most of the year without my wand, so it wasn't a handicap.
"We also know that they were expecting Lycanthropy to be as debilitating for me as it's proven to be for Lupin. But it seems that I find the form quite natural. So natural, in fact, that I can take the form at will," and so he transforms into lupine form all in one go, then transforms gradually back over the course of half a minute. He is still surprised at the fact that it doesn't hurt when he does it deliberately in this way. "We've been cultivating the idea that I've been remedial since returning, but I've actually been training ahead quite severely. Duelling practise with Snape and Flitwick, Charms and Transfigurations tutoring, and loads of practise on my own as well."
"All the revision," says Ron, as if finally understanding something that's been bothering him all term. Of course, that's more than likely exactly what's happening.
"Was last year part of the plan, then?" Hermione asks with a perplexed scowl. "To throw them off?"
Harry is surprised that she'd even ask it. He'd certainly not considered that. "Not on my part," he says, but shrugs. In the end, what does he know about what plans Dumbledore has had. "It seems unlikely, though. It was a bit risky, to allow me to play with my health so."
"Yeah, you looked like a horror show when they brought you here," Ron says. "You've not gained much weight but you look loads better."
"Righ', thanks," Harry says and rolls his eyes.
"What about the Senior Malfoy and the Lestranges?" Ron asks. "I mean, why would Lestrange and Malfoy kill each other like that?"
"Malfoy was helping me," says Harry, reluctant to speak further on the subject. "He was trying to protect me. He didn't know that I could protect myself. I couldn't tell him anything, because Voldemort could have seen it in his mind."
"But why was he—"
"Well!" Hermione interrupts. "I think it's time for us to be going," she says and stands gracefully, then straightens her skirt. Ron looks up at her for several seconds before gaining his own feet. "Classes begin tomorrow, after all, and NEWTs are still looming. Aren't they, Ron?"
"I think I must have asked an improper question," says Ron, "because Hermione has cut the conversation short." He looks at Harry with a genuine apology, though for what, Harry has no idea. Ron offers Harry a hand up, then pulls him into a comrade's embrace, with two hard pats on the back that rattle Harry's insides, before stepping back again and releasing Harry's shoulders. "So, what will you do now?"
"Transform, then sleep, then wake up in the morning and regain my human form before going off to breakfast. Not so very different from every other cycle."
"But you can't do any magic once you're in your lupine form, right?" asks Hermione, though she already knows the answer to that.
"Correct," Harry agrees. "And I can't transform out of lupine form once the moon is out. It's a bit more restrictive than a normal Animagus transformation, but it's not all bad, and I maintain my understanding of reality even in wolf form, thanks to the Wolfsbane potion. So…" he shrugs.
"I'd like to see the transformation again," Hermione says shyly.
Harry obliges, then decides to remain that way. He rubs himself between and against their legs, to show his affection. And then he moves by them to leap onto his made bed, and do his thrice-round check before settling exactly in the centre. It is his bed, after all. Besides, Draco is not here. He allows their petted affection and farewells, then watches them leave and dozes off soon after.
* * *
Harry had been ignoring stares all morning, eating breakfast with about as much enthusiasm as he normally musters. Now he sits in shocked silence, (though, he berates himself, he should not be shocked). Dumbledore has been standing at the Head Table surrounded by staff, as usual, and speaking to the school. "Good morning to all and welcome to the Summer term. I am very pleased to announce that since Voldemort was killed this Friday past, Death Eater activity has dropped dramatically. All of wizarding Britain is safer as a result of his destruction.
"Although a group effort, with the talents of many ministry officials and members of the Hogwarts staff merging to bring about the conditions necessary for the global plan; this was primarily the mission of Harry Potter and Draco Malfoy, who worked diligently to maintain the illusions necessary to manipulate the Dark Lord into a position of weakness, and thusly, dispatch him.
"For his courage and integrity, Draco Malfoy is awarded one hundred points for Slytherin House," Dumbledore says, and there is a collective gasp round the room, not the least of which is coming from Draco's own table. Dumbledore has never been particularly fair to the Slytherins. Of course, the Slytherins have never been known for their integrity.
"For each of the members of the Young Order who went to Malfoy Manor after the battle to assist with…taking out the rubbish, twenty-five points will be awarded to their Houses." That means seventy-five for Gryffindor, fifty for Ravenclaw, and twenty-five for Hufflepuff.
"And finally, for gaining the courage and resolve to overcome what seemed like insurmountable trammels, for finding strength where others might find weakness, and for most impressive magical growth, as evidenced by his successful duel against Voldemort; Harry Potter is awarded one hundred fifty points for Gryffindor."
Gryffindor erupts into cheers and ecstatic applause. This latest two hundred twenty-five point addition allows them to overtake Slytherin for the lead. Slytherin is not far behind, though. They now shoot venomous looks across the hall at their greatest rivals.
"We are," Dumbledore continues, "most exceedingly proud of all of you, and hope that you will all have a productive summer term." He sits, and conversations bubble forth. Harry's table is no exception—well, except for the fact that Harry is sitting there.
"Potter!" calls Finnegan, eyes shining and cheeks slightly pink from excitement. His brogue is nearly impenetrable. "How'd you do it, then?"
Harry scowls and pretends to care about his breakfast. "Not sure it's really breakfast table conversation."
"Oh go on!" cries Ron. "It's perfectly fine—we've all had worse conversations than that one would be, mate."
Harry doesn't feel like speaking about it. He says, "Perhaps you should tell it, then, Ron. Please," and he waits expectantly for Ron to tell it.
Ron looks about to argue, but then seems to change his mind at the last moment. He gives Harry a look, as if to say, 'Fine, then!' "Harry killed Voldemort with a knife after duelling wandlessly with him for, like, hours."
"Oh Christ," Harry mutters.
"Wandlessly?" asks some first year with fear and awe in her eyes.
"It can't have been more than half an hour," says Harry tiredly. And it's really a shame because there was a time he would have sacrificed quite a lot for this type of attention. He is the star just now—the centre of everything—but he really only wishes to speak with Draco—to be certain Draco is all right after the visit with his mother.
"Can you show us wandless magic?" asks little Dennis Creevey, who is at least not as tiny as the first years. Nearly, though.
"The Headmaster does it all the time," Harry mutters, but then lifts his hand slightly and Accios a roll of bread from the opposite end of the table before banishing it silently to Ron's plate.
"Parlour tricks," says a most familiar voice over Harry's shoulder, and he is both relieved and nervous. Draco places his hands on Harry's shoulders and massages them slightly, discreetly. "Why not show them something a bit more interesting? A pocket shield, perhaps?”
With Draco here and acting so like himself, Harry is hard-pressed not to swoon. So he takes a deep, calming breath and falls into his meditation space. He levitates a napkin from the table, then surrounds it with what Draco has so gracefully named a 'pocket shield', which is simply a small, spherical shield. He casts Incendio and watches as in a flash, the napkin is immolated, consuming all of the air in the shield. He releases the shield with a pop, then dissipates its charred contents. He can feel people crowding behind Draco, and see them crowding behind Ron and Hermione. Everyone is here staring, even some of the professors, like Hagrid.
Harry feels so guilty for having to keep things from Hagrid, of all people. And only because Hagrid would tell others—not because Hagrid is evil, or disloyal. Harry looks up at the faces about him—scores of Hogwarts pupils united by a common curiosity, of which he is the centre again. And he thinks of how they are all so alike, despite their small differences, and despite their separation into Houses—that separation that keeps them all from being a single school. That separation which seems to breed some rather unhealthy distrust. He thinks, Why the fuck not? and so decides very clearly what he wishes to do, takes a deep breath, then exhales, flexing his power precisely.
The questioning grunts and sighs come first, then the gradually crescendoing exclamations and conversations. All Harry cares about, however, is that Draco has sat down at Harry's right, and is now kissing him quite thoroughly. He has no idea how long it goes on, before Draco pulls away for just long enough to murmur, "So considerate of you, to choose my colour."
"It was purely selfish," Harry admits. Draco has always looked spectacular in silver since it doesn't adulterate the colour of his eyes. It doesn't look terrible on any of the other students either, though, and that is more of a surprise. Silver robes, trousers or skirts, and ties. White shirts. Silver hats, though no one is wearing them just now. Harry wouldn't have picked silver, since it's a Slytherin colour, but Draco was right—he'd thought about it, and picked Draco's favourite. He would worry he's going soft, but he's always been soft.
"I suppose I can forgive that," Draco says, but it's mostly for something to say before he caresses Harry's upper lip with both of his own, then Harry's lower lip, before just tasting—
"All right, that's enough. You've all got lessons now, I suspect," says Snape in his perpetual annoyance. Harry still gets a thrill when he listens to that voice, the smooth sexuality of it, and thinks, I've had that. He's still a bloke, after all. "Mr Potter—Mr Malfoy—"
Harry pulls away reluctantly, then shoots a venomous look at Snape. "You know I can best you, Professor."
"I've bested you dozens of times, Mr Potter," says Snape haughtily.
"Not in months," Harry counters with betrayed surprise that Snape would forget such a detail. "Shall we duel now?" and perhaps he's feeling a bit overly confident, or perhaps it's merely rushing adrenaline, but he pulls together an air glider and rises to stand upon it. He rapidly ascends until he is hovering, crouched for best manoeuvrability, at Snape's shoulder level.
"Mr Potter," Snape growls.
Harry levitates Snape into the air as well, then follows him, until they are high enough that they can have a private conversation. "Professor Snape," Harry says.
"Is this behaviour truly necessary?'
"Of course, not," Harry admits, "but it is nice to be a child for a while, having just murdered the Dark Lord and all. It's a bit anticlimactic isn't it? Going back to lessons with Binns."
"You'll be fortunate if you even earn a NEWT in History."
"It's a fair cop," Harry agrees.
"MR POTTER! FIFTY POINTS FROM GRYFFINDOR FOR THIS MOST FRIGHTFUL DISPLAY," It's McGonagall through a Sonorous charm. "AND THAT WILL BE ANOTHER FIFTY IF YOU ARE NOT DOWN HERE AGAIN PRESENTLY!"
"One might think," Harry says to Snape, "that she would have realised by now that I don't care about Gryffindor House points. Especially since it's her own house she's taking points from."
Snape sighs. "As much as I would enjoy seeing your house lose again, I must insist that we descend now, as I've lessons to teach, and you've lessons to attend."
Harry lowers Snape carefully, but simply dissipates his glider so that he falls past, catching himself in a cushion easily—a manoeuvre he perfected by jumping off the castle's turrets. In this way, he manages to arrive presently, while Snape is still making his descent. "I'm not entirely certain which part of the display was frightful," Harry says. "Professor Snape certainly wasn't frightened." Professor Snape lands presently with nary a bump.
"I was frightened," comes a tiny voice—some first year Hufflepuff boy who immediately blushes beet red at having spoken aloud.
Harry finds it somehow endearing, though, and he feels a bit sad. "I didn't mean to frighten you," he says truthfully, then uses a silent Diffindo to lop off a small lock of his own hair, then transfigures it into a tiny little snitch, gold-coloured and everything. Its wings are drawn in though, and it cannot fly. He hands it to the boy as an apology, and says, "I'm very sorry."
The boy's eyes are big and round. "You made that out of your own hair," he says. "Am I going to be able to do that?"
"Of course," says Harry. "And before seventh year, I'd wager."
Most of the other pupils begin drifting off to their classes. Harry seeks out Hermione and Ron to walk with, but is distracted by Draco, who is leaning against the wall beside the Hall's entrance, apparently waiting for him. So Harry jogs to meet him there. "Draco," Harry says with a little smile.
Draco does not smile back. It confuses Harry though, of course, it shouldn't. Whenever he thinks things are finally simplifying, they become entangled again. "What have I done now?" he asks tiredly, prepared to be cut loose or yelled at or—whatever.
Draco shrugs. Says, "In love with the spotlight now, aren't you? The Famous Harry Potter."
"Wasn't it you who suggested I perform for them only minutes ago?"
"That was more than a parlour trick," Draco says with curled lip. At least Harry knows not to take it seriously, since it's obvious Draco is merely jealous, at this point. "You showed everyone your flying trick. No one knew about that."
"Except for you," says Harry.
"Exactly!"
"I really missed you while I was away," Harry offers, though he'd been, perhaps, a little bit infatuated with Lucius as well. He's still a bit infatuated with Snape, but that doesn't mean he doesn't enjoy Draco's company.
Draco stares at him in disbelief, and Harry realises that he'd not noticed when Draco's face had become so expressive—when Draco's face had stopped being just another closed door to his personality. "Away?" Draco asks.
"At the Manor," Harry clarifies, in case Draco doesn't know what he means.
"Harry, you were being held captive, by—well, if not my father, then certainly the Dark Lord. You were being tortured, and yet you still managed to carry out the plan—"
"I've already been awarded house points for my bloody bravery," Harry says with a bit of disgust. "I'd much rather get fucked than lectured, in case I get the choice."
"Didn't you get enough of that at the Manor?" Draco asks bitterly. He's still so lovely, even with the sour face, and the new silver robes are really very attractive on him.
"Oh, that's right. I'd forgotten that being tortured by Voldemort is the same as being fucked by you. Yes, I certainly had enough of that," Harry agrees, then attempts to leave. Only, he so rarely gets to actually execute a dramatic exit.
In this case, Draco catches him by the robe and whispers, "Wait…" only so softly Harry could easily pretend he hadn't heard it—if that were what he wished to do. He allows himself to be coaxed back into the circle of Draco's arms, and into a desperate kiss. And since they are alone, (and despite the fact that they are still in the Great Hall), and since Harry can feel Draco's hardness pressing against him, Harry feels the pang of forbidden desire. He wants Draco here, in the Great Hall, right now. He opens the button and zip on Draco's school trousers.
"What are you doing?" Draco asks, as if it isn't obvious. It's not important enough to stop him snogging, though.
"Mm, mm," says Harry, as his lips are otherwise occupied.
"We can't do this here," says Draco, who has never been the one to care overmuch about propriety in the corridors of Hogwarts before. Of course, they've never done more than snogged in the Great Hall before. Draco is not slowing his assault, though.
Harry does not possess the strength of will to stop this now. "Mm-hmm," he says, because his mouth is otherwise occupied. Draco's hands, at least, agree with Harry, because they have already opened the button and zip on Harry's trousers. And since Harry is so thin, he simply wiggles a bit and they fall down. He wears no pants because he is a very naughty boy and he has been hoping. He kicks the trousers off his still-shod feet, and is gratified when Draco lifts him by the hips and angles him and doesn't even wait for Harry to use the Lubricoleo charm. Harry does manage it, though, just as he manages to get his feet over Draco's shoulders.
"We really shouldn't—oh yes—do this, Harry," Draco is nearly grunting. It sounds as lewd as it is.
Harry loves it. "Right," he says, but his voice is bouncing as he's knocked against the stone wall again and again by the force of Draco's thrusts. "Faster."
"Oh bloody fuck," Draco cries, but softly, and he is leaning in. Harry knows this won't last long, which is likely a good thing. Far safer, that way. But he hears no one, and he could cast an invisibility and a sound barrier if he wished. But he really, really doesn't wish to. He closes his eyes and smiles, as Draco speeds inside him. "We've an appointment with the solicitor today," Draco pants as he slows, trying to gain control over himself.
Harry is impressed, but not overly interested in any appointment with a solicitor they may have later. "Fabulous," he says. "Harder, faster, you know…" he prompts.
"Give us a mo', right?" Draco says and stops completely.
"So now you're Ron?"
Draco's eyes go wide. "Please don't ruin this for me, Harry."
Harry snickers. "Your prick is in my arse, and yet I feel nothing. That can' be righ'. Now, could you possibly find a way to remedy this situation, luv?"
It's enough to make Draco growl and thrust again—hard, and Harry grunts as he's knocked against the wall behind him hard enough to bruise, and not only on the bony ridge of his spine. "No one fucks like you," Harry murmurs blissfully.
"Of course not," Draco agrees, then loses control completely and comes in less than thirty seconds. Harry doesn't mind a bit. "Oh hell," says Draco, which means he must. "I knew I wouldn't make it."
"I think you made it," Harry disagrees and places his feet on the ground once he's lowered. "Evanesco."
"You didn't come."
Harry shrugs. "I can come any time.” He winks, then wiggles the fingers of his right hand. "Not that difficult, right?"
"We've missed half of Advanced Herbology," Draco says and pulls up his pants, and trousers.
Harry nods his agreement. "When is the appointment?"
"Two o'clock this afternoon. We've got a portkey there and back again, so we needn't leave early."
"That's a bit inconvenient isn't it? An hour into Potions?"
"It would have been a perfect time for us to fuck, though, wouldn't it? But you couldn't wait, could you?"
"You started it," Harry says defensively whilst retrieving his trousers and pulling them on again. "And you were the one being a bitch, I might add."
"Just let's not discuss it, shall we?"
"Ideal," Harry agrees. "Herbology revision?"
"Now?"
"Yeah?"
"All right," says Draco, and so they pass the remainder of their Advanced Herbology lesson in the library revising Advanced Herbology. Such good little children they are.
(chapter 2 continues….)
Celebrity (continued) by colibri
Chapter 2: Celebrity (continued)
The visit to the solicitor passes without major calamity, especially since Harry rather expects Narcissa Malfoy to cause a scene at his appearance, and so is neither surprised nor disappointed when she does so.
Harry and Draco take a portkey to Farrer & Co., which caters to both muggles and wizards. Their solicitor's name is Farley, and through him, Harry finds out that Lucius has done some very creative division of his assets. He has left the Manor and grounds to Draco in their entirety, except that he has left all items that were once part of the Black estate to Narcissa. The library and its contents, as well as all books, manuscripts, and wizarding items are left to Draco. Harry supposes this includes all of Lucius's Dark Arts items. All items acquired specifically for Narcissa's use are to be hers and are enumerated individually, while the balance belong to Draco.
And then come the monetary assets. It appears that Draco already has several trusts set up, and so is extremely wealthy. In addition, however, he receives one-fifth of Lucius's liquid and semi-liquid assets—bonds and the like. Harry and Narcissa each receive two-fifths—splitting the rest. From the numbers, Harry realises he'd had no clue how wealthy the Malfoys are. How wealthy he is, now. And he’d considered himself well-off before, what with his dual inheritances.
It seems very, very wrong, that Harry should be here, and Narcissa's hysterics begin to take on a far more reasonable aspect. The part where she complains at her husband's murderer benefiting from his death, while being technically untrue, is particularly painful for Harry. But in the end it matters little, for Farley's curt answer silences her. "It is none of my concern, Madam Malfoy," he says, "whether the conditions that cause the will to go into effect are legal. My concern is solely with the legality of the will itself, and its execution."
And so there are various documents for the three of them to sign in order for the heritage to transfer; and when it is all done, hours later, Harry is exhausted and depressed, as are Lucius's surviving wife and son.
Draco takes his mother to a posh hotel in muggle London called One Aldwych, and because she refuses to be in Harry's company, Draco insists that Harry take the single portkey back to Hogwarts. Harry refuses the portkey, claiming he could Apparate directly to Hogsmeade if he so desired, since he's done it before. Apparating from London to Scotland, however, is a major feat, and Draco insists that Harry promise not to Apparate.
It turns out, however, that Farrer & Co. are linked to the floo network, so Harry floos to the Three Broomsticks, surprised at the smoothness of the journey and wondering, for the first time, whether there are varying qualities of floo powder. There is so very much Harry still does not know.
It is just after five o'clock in the afternoon when Harry dusts himself off before the fireplace, and the pub is bustling with life. Witches and wizards of all shapes, sizes, and colours are celebrating, it seems, and the place smells like it's been bathed in butterbeer and firewhisky with just a hint of fruit. The clientele is already so pissed, it takes nearly a full minute before conversation completely dies, then another thirty seconds before Harry hears a slurred voice questioning, "Is that 'im, then?"
"Don’t think so….They said he’s got long, poncey hair, now," says another that Harry could not have heard, but for the Lycanthropy.
Harry debates leaving at once, but finds he is slightly intrigued as to what is going on.
"Mayhap it got singed in the Battle," another whispers in reply, and even through the whisper, Harry can hear the capital. "Fink it looks like 'im, me."
Harry debates ordering a butterbeer, but thinks that despite his often blatant attention-seeking antics, he does not really need this particular sort of attention. Only, it'd be rude, wouldn't it? Not to say 'hello' to Madam Rosmerta, now that he's here. Have a spot of Butterbeer, perhaps? He finds himself at the counter and on a barstool, though he normally takes a table.
"Well, if it isn't Mr Potter?" says Rosmerta, and she sounds less than disgusted with him, which is nice. Harry can't recall whether he's been here since all of the negative press surrounding his Lycanthropy (and his sex life) began making the rounds. "How does it feel, then? To finally be rid of him?"
And the way she says it, with no inflection at all—as if Voldemort had been just another bad bloke, and as if Harry hadn't committed bloody murder—sets off a claxon in Harry's chest, though he's not entirely certain why, nor what it should mean. "A bit like that," Harry says quietly, thoughtfully. He looks into her eyes and smiles sadly. "Anticlimactic."
She returns his sad smile, then sets a mug of butterbeer down before him. "A little token of my appreciation, for the Man Who Restored Our Hope."
Harry thinks he'd rather just be called the name his parents chose for him, but he thanks the proprietress, then sits drinking silently, breathing, listening to the conversations that have sprung up again throughout the establishment. They are mostly talking about him, now, of course. And Draco. And the wedding. Which he and Draco haven't spoken of since the re-engagement. They never had got Lucius's blessing. Lucius had been murdered still believing his son was evil. And lovingly accepting him despite that.
Draco had received a final letter from Lucius as well, and had read it with great control. He'd asked Harry to turn it into a silver pendant for him, and Harry had, right there in the solicitor's offices. It’s an easy charm, but Narcissa and the solicitor were startled. It took several minutes for Harry to figure out that it was because he'd been using exclusively wandless magic. It's too natural for him, now. He'd be taxed, going back to the wand, which actually requires more discipline in some ways. His own natural magic requires only mental discipline to control. Wand magic requires physical discipline as well. And great gobs of knowledge and specific practise.
Ultimately, the visit is uninteresting, and once he's finished his butterbeer, he thanks Rosmerta, moves silently through the main doors, then turns left onto the main thoroughfare, to make his way back to Hogwarts.
He nearly screams when he is beset by a large, blonde woman with curly hair and red-painted talons—er, nails. The nausea is enough to tell him who it is. He attempts to move round her.
"Mr Potter! Would you care to give a word to the press?"
"Good evening, Ms Skeeter," says Harry, and moves away again.
"Surely you've some comment!" she insists, her Quick-Quotes Quill in her hand and ready at a moment's notice. "How does it feel to finally fulfil your role as Saviour of the Wizarding World?"
Harry could so easily get away from this woman. The difficulty lies in that no matter what he says, she will write whatever she wishes. Perhaps even if he says nothing at all.
He could kill her. It is, sadly, tempting, he thinks, and tries not to wonder what that says about him. But threatening her, though satisfying, would likely lead to Harry himself being raised as the next Dark Lord to be slain. He stifles a sigh, then cultivates that look of earnestness he has perfected over the past year. He will simply have to use some…other forms of persuasion. The Dark Arts are so much more useful than the professors give them credit for. "Well…I suppose I could speak for a moment," Harry says with winning insecurity, he hopes. He doesn't wish his influence to be too noticeable. And he certainly doesn't want Ms Skeeter in love with him. Yech. "The professors will be expecting me back any moment—"
"It shan't take but a minute," she says, bullying, and she even smells conniving. Of course, Harry likely does, as well. "Do you mind?" she asks and takes out a parchment, then sets her Quill in motion.
"Not at all," Harry says amiably, because now, he is on the record, as it were.
"Is it true that you’ve just come from the reading of the late Mr Lucius Malfoy's will?"
Harry's Occlumency lessons save him again. He displays no reaction whatever, despite his bone-chilling shock. How in the seven hells has Rita Skeeter found out about the reading of Lucius's will?? He has no idea what to say, but he supposes her asking means that she already knows. "Yes, in fact," he answers sadly, hoping the pause was unnoticeable. He needs to regain his composure, if he is to do any subtle manipulation during this interview.
"Has Mr Malfoy included the famous Harry Potter in his will, then? Despite being quite outspoken regarding his negative feelings toward you?" she asks.
"Mr Malfoy gave his life for me, Madam Skeeter," Harry says solemnly, but with that same earnestness. "I can assure you that whatever feelings he may have harboured toward me in the past, they were feelings he managed to overcome in service of the Light. Mr Malfoy bequeathed to me the greatest gift he could have—that being his own life—and I will remain grateful to him for as long as I am able to feel."
"Are your wedding plans finalized as of yet, Mr Potter? Were they ever anything more than a ruse?"
"The request was certainly genuine," Harry says with confusion. As if he can't imagine a situation in which an engagement might be entered into under false pretences.
"It is said that Mr Draco Malfoy is already betrothed to another, a French girl called Mademoiselle Cécile Leoncourt. Is this true? And please explain how this is possible."
"I do not know if it is currently true," Harry says truthfully, "and I cannot speak for Draco, Madam Skeeter. I know only that Draco has asked for my hand, and I have consented to give it."
It is working now, his manipulation. He can feel the subtle change in their positions, scent the lessening of her hostility. Her cut-throat ambition leads her to a good story, but does not give her true interest in her subjects. Her slowly building softness for Harry does. "Haven’t you begun any of the planning for the wedding?" she asks, true curiosity shimmering on the surface of her voice, underpinning her words. "Surely it will be the most important day of your life!"
"There are so many important days in one's life, wouldn't you agree?" he waits for her concessionary nod before continuing. "Still, I am very excited," he says, though he's not really, not yet. He's more a bit leery, if he were to be completely honest, which he shan’t. "I think I may allow a very few, hand-selected members of the press to attend—present company included, of course—" she nearly swoons, "with Draco's approval."
"The event of a lifetime," she breathes.
"I'm certain the story you write as a result of today's interview will show why you are an ideal representative of the press to have at the wedding of a century."
"Absolutely," she agrees eagerly, then takes a quick look down at what her quill has written and does a double take. She mumbles a distracted "Blimey—" before performing some hushed spell-work. From what he can tell, it appears to Harry that she is correcting any misquotes the quill has made. "Ah…one more question, Mr Potter?"
"All right," Harry agrees.
"How has Madam Malfoy taken the news of your engagement?"
Harry is caught off guard again, but is hardly worried, now. Rita is his, if not so severely as Lucius was. "I think, perhaps, you should save that question for the next interview?" Harry suggests.
She catches the implication immediately, of course. "When might that be, Mr Potter?" with just a touch of the previous ambition showing through her newfound respectfulness. She is still looking to advance her own career first. She would simply prefer not to do it at Harry's expense, now.
"I will get back to you, Ms Skeeter. That I promise. If you'll leave me a calling card?"
"Of course," she agrees hastily and digs inside her bag, from which she pulls out a calling card with her moving image and contact information upon it. Harry immediately removes the image, though discreetly, dismantling the recording charms she has laid upon the card. Rather ingenious, actually—if someone had no idea how ambitious she is and unknowingly accepted the card, they’d be giving much more information than they'd bargained for.
"We will be in touch, Ms Skeeter," Harry says and offers his hand. She is still several centimetres taller than he. She takes his delicate, elegant hand in her large, mannish one, and swoons a little bit. Harry has to assure himself that he did not accidentally make her fall in love. He's positive of that. She never would have given him that calling card if he had. "Shall I walk you back to the Three Broomsticks, then?" because he doesn't wish to turn his back to her. He wants her safely in the floo.
"I have a room in town, here," she says by way of apology. "I could accompany you to Hogwarts—" hopeful.
"It might be best that you gain permission from the Headmaster before returning to Hogwarts property. Well, good night, then," he says and quickly condenses a glider beneath his own feet, then lifts off rapidly, never looking away from her for a moment. He waves once he is five or six meters above the ground and a good ten meters away, accelerating very quickly. He then places an invisibility charm over himself and stops to watch.
Her face is stuck on amazement for several moments before she shakes herself out of it and pulls into her beetle form. But Harry casts a tracking charm on her, followed by a befuddlement charm that will lead her to forget her destination whenever she sets off for Hogwarts. At least for the next few days. And he will know where she is the entire time, if he so desires. Unless she manages to neutralise the charm.
He sets off to the castle again, finishing the journey unmolested.
(end chapter 2)
Of Saint and Steed, and What it Means to be Alone by colibri
Chapter 3: Of Saint and Steed, and What it Means to be Alone
"St Mungo's?" Harry asks, and is surprised. Shocked, even. "But—"
"I don't wish to speak of it!" Draco nearly shrieks, and in his defence, it is the third time he's saying it, though not in answer to this particular question.
"You can either speak of it with me," Harry replies quietly, his voice dangerous, "or you can consider our engagement void. This is absolutely ridiculous."
"Ultimata, now," Draco sneers.
"No, only one," Harry counters, his entire person a large warning. "And I'm not joking. I'll give you a few minutes to think on it," Harry decides magnanimously. "Or—even better. Go to your rooms, Draco, and spend some time away from me. I've revision to complete. If you decide you want me to marry you, then you are making the decision that your family business becomes my family business." This is a particularly nasty thing for him to do tonight, as they've not had sex yet today, but Draco simply packs his things together unhurriedly, the line of neck and jaw proud and elegant as ever, then leaves without a word. Draco seems more uninterested than angry. Harry tells himself that is a good thing, though he doesn't really believe it.
* * *
Rumours abound by lunch the next day and by supper, everyone is shocked but certain that he and Draco have broken off the engagement and are back on the market, as it were. Harry spends a lot of time with Ron and Hermione, helping them revise, since it grows stale revising the same material once it is second-nature. This way, he gets a different perspective, as well as getting to show his friends a bit more of what he can do. He finds that even Hermione is benefiting from the arrangement—something he'd never thought possible those years ago when they'd first become friends. If he'd not been the Boy Who Lived, she would have been the celebrity of their school years. She is powerful and talented, and ultimately good. Harry thinks that he has lost any true goodness he once had, somewhere along the way.
When he returns to his rooms that evening, he stares at his eyes in the mirror for a very long time, looking for traces of black that had not been there before. A midnight rimming, perhaps, round the iris? A widening of the pupil? And after he has determined that no, there is no growing darkness in his eyes, he decides that he is simply too powerful, and can determine himself whether his eyes will turn black. There will be no outward physical signs of the evil that has taken root inside of him. Only his behaviour will tell, and his lack of qualms over manipulating Rita Skeeter the other day is a very strong indication of his evil.
* * *
"Mr Potter…" and the quirked eyebrow of doom. "On what shall I blame this…visit?"
"I was hoping for some…advice, I suppose, Professor."
"You do realise that my policy on not blending myself overmuch in students' personal lives has not changed, yes?"
Harry blinks before he realises what Snape is talking about. "Oh…yes, of course. This isn't about Draco."
Snape steps out of the way and Harry is allowed inside, where the cacophony of smells would be overwhelming if it weren't so very comforting in its familiarity. He still feels most at ease here. Out of any possible places in the world he could go, this is the place he would choose. But he cannot fault Snape for his morals. Indeed, that is why he is here. "Professor, I'm afraid that somewhere along the way, I've allowed the Darkness to dominate me."
Snape observes him thoughtfully for several long minutes, and Harry uses the time to meditate lightly, his eyes remaining open. He wonders whether he should be able to feel the evil inside of himself like some sort of burrowing beast, or whether it is too insidious. Has the evil become a part of him so completely that he cannot even imagine wishing to be any other way? Is it, perhaps, taking him over, like Harry's induced love took over Lucius Malfoy.
"Why do you say this, Mr Potter?" asks the professor.
"Because I utilize people as tools when I need to, and I have no compunction about it. I do not feel the least bit guilty about swaying Rita Skeeter Monday last, to avoid further bad press."
"You seem to feel guilty enough to mention it," Snape says.
"I feel guilty about not feeling guilty," Harry clarifies. "Or, perhaps I am simply fretting over my lack of compunction, when the magic I used was clearly Dark—just as the magic I used to alter Lucius Malfoy was Dark. I am very powerful now—even more powerful, I think, than when Voldemort was alive. I was using a lot of energy blocking him—perhaps even supplying him with additional magic. Now that drain is gone."
"You are also very well trained, Mr Potter," offers the Professor, somehow making the words sound insulting, despite there being no true way to turn it into an insult that actually applies to Harry.
"That only makes me even more dangerous. I can do anything I wish with magic, and most of it without wand or word. Most wizards could not stop me from bending them to my will, and as long as that is true, then I do not worry about retaliation."
"So you’ve walked about casting spells on various and sundry students because you can?"
"Not exactly—" Harry admits. "I've considered it, though. On several occasions."
"I've considered murdering my students every single day for the past twenty years, but I've not done it so far. I do not think that is enough to categorise me as evil."
Harry supposes Snape has a point. "You don't go about casting Imperius on various and sundry, however."
"Well, you did it to Lucius Malfoy, who was assisting the Dark Lord. That was in a time of war. Rita Skeeter has proven herself extremely dangerous in the past, and has directly harmed you whilst conspiring with Draco. I think it is still a time of war, and certain types of press may assist those surviving Death Eaters who haven't yet given up the dream."
"I think you're fishing, Professor."
"Stop using it, then," Snape suggests. "If you know that it is wrong, stop doing it. You have other ways of dealing with the consequences of bad press or annoyance or whatever results from not resorting to dark magic."
"So you don't think it's too late, then?"
"No, Mr Potter, I do not. Now, run along. I'm certain you've better things to do with your time than fret over your magic. I know I do."
Harry runs along, but he's not certain he feels better.
* * *
"You can' just strop about in here," Ron says with the great authority and confidence only a couple of firewhiskys can give a bloke like Ron in this situation. The situation being that Harry is lounging about in pyjama bottoms and nothing else, and Ron still hasn't got over his attraction. He has, however, been very happy (and sexually active) with Hermione for so long that he's not unduly concerned. Especially now that Hermione has made it known that it's been obvious to her for ages, and that it 'truly doesn't worry’ her.
"I'm not stropping about," Harry says crisply, because he is completely sober and wants to emphasise that fact. "And I can do anything I wish in here, because these are my rooms."
"Well that's the problem, mate!" Ron exclaims, as if his point has just been made for him. "You should be at the fest!"
The Hufflepuff party, though they've all agreed that Harry should not, under any circumstances, go to a Hufflepuff Bacchanal. "I think not," Harry says.
"He's there," says Ron with great, exaggerated disgust, and it sounds like he's referring to Voldemort, but in actuality, of course, he is referring to Draco Malfoy.
"He can be there if he wi—"
"Offering his stonking cock to anyone who'll pucker up, he is."
Harry hadn't needed to hear that. And really, it's not that at all that has him considering going to the party. He's not even considering it, really. Except that he is lonely, and everyone else is there. But…no…if Draco is there, Harry definitely shouldn't go. The idea was, after all, that they give each other some space. Or, well, something to that effect. That he give Draco some space. Right. "I don't care who blows his stonking cock," Harry lies, though he's uncertain what about it is a lie. Well it's certainly not the portion about how large—
"And a morose Colin Creevey is there, sitting in a corner, just as stroppy as you."
"What's Colin to do with this?"
"Nothing," Ron shrugs, "only when I asked him why he weren't festing, he said you should be there, pulling blokes, instead of the royal Malfoy—"
Harry sighs. Colin's still pining for him, of course.
"—and I thought," Ron continues, "wouldn't it be nice if Harry pulled a good bloke for once—"
"Oi, Draco is a good bloke!"
But Ron looks at him as if he's gone out of his tree. "Harry, you should see your fiancé and how he's carrying on."
Harry throws up his hands. "Fine! I'll go to the bloody Hufflepuff Whore-fest. Merlin knows I belong there." He goes to his trunk to find something suitable. He is working on deciding between a t-shirt or button down when Ron suddenly squeaks, startling Harry. "What?" he asks, turning with alarm.
But it's only Ron, standing there, his brows drawn together. "Harry!" he says, all exaggerated seriousness.
"Yes, I am," Harry agrees, almost certain, now, that there is nothing at all the matter.
"You're not a whore!" Ron says with wide eyes, still perfectly serious.
"I can't believe how pissed you are," says Harry and turns back to his clothing. "How can you stand?"
"'M not that pissed," says Ron. "Only had a few shots."
"A few, eh?" says Harry, not really paying attention. He pulls off his old tee and takes on the new button-down shirt he got in Muggle London weekend last. It's pink and sheer with vertical stripes of ribbon half a centimetre wide throughout.
"P'raps four," Ron continues.
Harry snorts. It's a good thing Ron's such a very large bloke, or he'd be laid out.
"But that was hours ago," which Harry translates as perhaps up to two hours ago. But likely much less. Ron is still very drunk.
"All right, you're not pissed, then," Harry says and pulls off his old jeans.
"Don't you ever wear pants?" Ron blurts.
"Occasionally." But not today. He pulls his tight, black jeans up on his way to the en-suite and buttons the fly. Levi's 501s. Cost him a pretty penny, they did. But he has the quid, now. He'd changed 300 galleons, but after a full day of shopping, his £1500 had dwindled to £540, which was still an ungodly amount of money. All of his clothing fits now, though.
He takes a look at himself in the glass, opens his shirt a bit more, exposing himself to the sternum, then runs a wet hand through his hair a few times. He proclaims himself ready and leaves the en-suite to find Ron dozing against a wall, yet not falling. Quite a feat. "Hello, Ronnikins," Harry says and gives the man a shake. "Arse over tit," Harry mutters, then resorts to drawing some of the alcohol directly out of Ron's blood with an Evanesco he has modified by will.
It does the trick.
"Oi," says Ron when Harry shakes him awake. "Already feeling a bit wrung out," he says, looking confused.
"Can't imagine why," Harry lies, "but I'm ready to go, now."
Ron gives him a once-over that ends up a bit more appreciative than Harry is certain he approves of. Only, it is tempting, that he could have Ron if he wished. "It appears you are," Ron agrees. They go.
Harry has never been to the Hufflepuff common room before. He's never even really known the way there. Ron knocks on the door and they wait until it opens. "Back for more then, Ron?" asks Ernie Macmillan, who looks to be at least two sheets to the wind, if not three. It is a few moments before he notices Harry, then does a double-take. "Potter?"
"Macmillan?" Harry says, mimicking the other's tone perfectly. "Am I not welcome?"
"Not wel—oh! No, of course you're welcome. I simply…you've never…before—"
"Thanks," Harry says.
"—and, well…Malfoy…" but he trails off without finishing.
"So I've heard. Smells like quite a party," he says and smells that horribly acrid, somehow musky, pot smoke that seeps into absolutely everything. He is glad no one really knows about his drugs history. He hates being stared at for things like that. Negative things.
"Where are my manners!" Ernie exclaims, then steps backward before turning.
They follow him down another short flight of stairs, and though the air isn't so full of smoke it's plainly visible, it is very present. Some music Harry recognises only from second-hand humming and perhaps shops in Diagon Alley is playing just loudly enough that it makes his stomach tingle. The beat is prominent and pleasant, which is all Harry cares about. "What do they do with the children?" Harry murmurs to Ron.
"Lock them in their dorms," says Ron with a smirk.
"Ah." Of course.
The staircase ends in a large common room—larger than the Gryffindor and Slytherin common rooms, certainly—that is filled with sound and smoke, heat and bodies. Bodies everywhere. And in the centre of the room, of course, sits the royal Malfoy on his throne. A bottle of Ogden's Finest is clasped negligently in one hand, a joint curls smoke from between two fingers of the other, and some bint has taken up residence between his legs, bobbing on his 'stonking cock'. Draco's head lolls languidly back in the chair and the translucent silver fringe of his lashes flutters against his elegant cheekbones. Still, he doesn't look to be particularly enjoying the blow, (or the blow). Perhaps he's merely nodded off.
Harry is extremely angry that his mouth waters (if only slightly) at the thought of being that bint. It's been a bit of hell for Harry, staying apart. He's never felt more alone, despite spending more time with Ron and 'Mione.
Only then the party notices his arrival and whispering swells. Draco's head lifts and his glassy eyes open to focus on Harry. He smiles an evil little smile and takes a long, long toke from his joint. He keeps the smoke in his lungs for a piece of forever, then says, "Harry Potter," grey-white curling from his mouth seductively, hiding his eyes for the barest of moments.
Harry is frozen. He is…angry, or? He doesn't know what he is. He doesn't know why. The smell is overpowering. And Harry is hating the languid pose of Draco's body, and that the bint sucking Draco's cock has turned out to be Pansy Bloody Parkinson, and even worse, that she is snickering at him. That she is looking back up at Draco, then taking a toke of his blow before lowering herself to his cock again. Harry's stomach cramps, and his mind whispers—I can make this stop. I can make all of this go away. He hates that he can't kill the lot of them right here.
But he knows other ways to make this stop. Oh yes. He is already halfway back to his rooms before he realises he has left, but then he condenses a glider and flies the remainder in under thirty seconds. He grabs a fistful of notes, counts to be certain there's at least a hundred quid in the bundle, then straightens it out, folds it up carefully, and stuffs it in his front pocket, making as little bulge as possible. He grabs a black jeans jacket, pulls it on, and is out the door.
Another glider gets him outside and off of Hogwarts grounds in a minute, and then he Apparates. He is shaking and breathing quickly. He is not thinking. And he does not even hear the sound of the bell when he rings it, nor does he recognise the man who answers, though he recognises the look.
"Now…what a lovely ducky comes a-calling. Please let me do something for you, luv."
The voice is familiar, trying for seduction but sounding a bit worn. And now that he looks more closely, Harry can see the remnants of features he recalls. "Stu?" he says, for he is nearly certain it is he.
"Ah, now that depends on who you are, luvly," says Stu with a smirk, and his teeth have seen better days. Stu has seen better days.
"Not chipping anymore, then," Harry says, and feels slightly sickened. Stu is skeletal now—thinner than Harry himself. And he looks sick. It helps that he wears long sleeves to cover himself, but there are sores at the corners of Stuart's mouth and he has no colour. His hair is dry as straw.
Stu frowns, then peers more closely. Approaches. "Harry Evans?" he says with great shock. "Is it you, then, Harry?" He seems fairly certain now.
Harry nods and feels torn between relief that he's not being asked in and sadness that he is relieved. He has, somewhere along the way, misplaced his desperate need for a fix, though it is still there, lingering in the back of his mind and making his arms itch.
"You look stunning," says Stu.
"Thanks," says Harry. "You look sick, Stu. Very, very sick."
"Times not as good as when you were here," says Stu with a little shrug.
"Lizzie?"
"Pneumonia," says Stu. "Not long after you left."
"Are you alone now, then?"
"No. Four new biters, three lads and a lass. Youngest is seventeen, I reckon. Says she's twenty, don't believe her," he explains with a shrug.
"Doesn't explain why you're so sick, Stu. Four working?"
Stu nods, scratches absently at a track hidden beneath his shirt.
"You're an addict, Stuart."
Stuart doesn't want to meet Harry's eyes at first, but then does for a moment, in the sickly gaslight. "Are you here for trade, ickle 'Arry?" he whispers.
"No, Stu. I've money today."
But then Stu is distracted by movement behind Harry. Footfalls that, if they'd continued, would not have attracted Harry's attention at all. He hears many people walking behind him on the street. But these footfalls have stopped, now. "Blimey," says Stu, his voice too weak to be more than a puff of air.
"Harry?" It is Draco.
"Can we go inside?" Harry asks Stu, ignoring Draco completely.
"What manner of creature is this?" asks Stuart, waxing poetic in his drug-stunted lust. "A shining angel, he is."
"Angel of Death, maybe," Harry mutters.
"Harry, what are you doing here?" Draco asks, and he is much closer now. Stu is looking up at Draco and tears are forming in his eyes. "Who is this man?"
"Stuart, this is Draco. Draco, this is Stuart. Lovely we've all met, now. Goodbye, Draco."
"How can you send that away?" asks Stuart.
"How do I keep forgetting how very much I hate you, Stuart?" Harry forces from between gritted teeth. "Even when I have money, you won't give me what I ask for. I can pay, Stu!" and he is desperate, now.
"Harry, are you here to buy drugs?" asks Draco, who still stinks of blow.
"Should I have bought them from you, perhaps?"
"Look…I'm sorry for that, all right?"
"I'm not complaining," Harry says, and finally turns to see Draco standing there behind him on the steps, still taller, despite standing one step down from Harry. "Just leave. Perhaps you can have that bint surgically attached to your cock."
"You can surgically attach me to your cock any day," Stu offers, swooning.
And Draco notices Stu now, for the first time, it seems, and curls his lip. "You are on death's door…Stuart, was it?"
Stu just nods worshipfully.
"No offence meant, Stuart, but I wouldn't touch you if you were the last man on earth."
"None taken," Stu says.
"You are so pathetic," Harry berates Stu. "Now sell me a fucking gram before I bloody well kill you!"
"Harry, you are not buying heroin from this man."
"Who are you to fucking tell me what I am and am not going to do?" Harry asks, and though his voice is calm, there is no mistaking the fury there, made acute by desperation. "I'll kill both of you," he hisses.
"That's a bit strong, isn't it?" Draco says, and he is not joking any longer, nor is he particularly arrogant. No, he smells more than slightly fearful, Harry finds, and it pleases him. Draco looks into his eyes, then looks away, over at Stu. "We can go back to...school and discuss this…"
Harry turns back to Stuart and asks, "Are you going to sell me a gram or not?"
Stuart looks startled. "Harry…what's happened to your eyes?"
Harry can't believe Stuart hasn't answered his question.
"Must be halluci…" shakes his head just a bit and squints. "They're all black, Harry…?"
"What?" Harry asks and blinks, as if he should be able to feel the difference. "All black?"
"They've bled to black, Harry," Draco whispers.
"Why? I've not even used…." I've not even used dark magic, he thinks, though he does not say it aloud.
"Harry, come back to Hogwarts with me, please?"
Harry is so distracted, he is nearly surprised to hear Draco's voice pleading with him. He looks to Stu. "You are a terrible drugs dealer," he says. "Completely inept!"
"I know," says Stu. "I don't want you to use any longer, Harry," he says, and looks tired. So tired. "You're so beautiful. And you escaped once. You don't belong here."
Stu's eyes close and his body stiffens, then turns to float horizontally before lowering itself, gently, to the floor.
"What did you do to him, Harry?"
"Stupefy, Mobilicorpus. I don't need dark magic for that."
"I thought you might have killed him," Draco says, as if it doesn't really matter to him. "For not selling heroin to you."
"Ah," says Harry, then walks inside. He knows where Stuart used to keep his stash.
"Harry!" Draco whispers urgently, but Harry does not care. "It likely won't work on you anyway, now…the Lycanthropy…"
Harry can't even consider it. "It's worth a try."
"Please…" a hitching breath, "St Mungo's is treating my mother for her laudanum dependency."
Harry freezes. He'd never considered that St. Mungo's might have a dependency treatment program. But that's not why Harry has stopped. He turns to look at Draco, who stands just outside the door, now, while Harry is in the corridor. "Did you tell her about our engagement?"
"Yes," Draco says. "She didn't care. She was furious that I had her committed. She cared for nothing but the laudanum."
"Have you told Mlle. Leoncourt?"
"And her father, yes," Draco says. "He was furious as well, but understands that you are an even more desirable mate than his own daughter, being the Saviour of the Wizarding World and all."
"Why wouldn't you tell me any of this before, Draco?" Harry asks, and he feels so very exhausted he can barely stand.
"Harry, I'm not one for introspection. Must I…?" he pleads.
"No," Harry agrees. He doesn't really care, he supposes, and truly, it seems that he'd get a more likely answer if he thought of it himself. Draco is immensely good at knowing and manipulating others, but he is not the world's most self-aware bloke. It's a strange irony. "Do you want to be with me, Draco?"
"Yes."
"Not Pansy."
"Oh please, Potter. She's a toad."
"So you allow toads to blow you, now? And share your drugs."
"I was so angry with you, Potter!" Draco finally exclaims. "For throwing me out! And I don't wish to even think about Mother being held in that place! Do you know, Father wrote her a letter as well—like he wrote to each of us? And she wouldn't even read it. I had to cast a counter-destruct charm on it, and another charm to keep it from being tossed out. She cares for no—"
"Stu?" comes a voice from upstairs, and Draco goes silent.
Harry puts the lad to sleep without a thought. Sighs. "You can't use drugs if you're with me, Draco. It's too difficult for me."
Draco blinks at him in something like confusion before he shakes his head. "Of course not. I haven't since we've been together. Except the last two Hufflepuff all-nighters since you broke up with me, of course."
"Right," though he's still not certain he'd broken up with Draco, exactly. "It was only time apart."
"That's shite, Potter."
"I never meant for us to break off the engagement. I was rather hoping you'd decide to come back."
"Oh you were," and Draco smiles a bit, for the first time since he has arrived here. "It's because I'm a shining angel, isn't it."
"Angels don't have genitalia, Draco."
"No geni—!…I'm not really well-read in muggle religion," Draco confesses. "Can we go? It really smells foul here."
"It does?" Harry doesn't think it smells that foul. Just a rather odd mixture of drug smells, dirty clothing, and kitchen offal. Of course, he rather likes strong smells. Then there is Stu, who does smell a bit like death.
"Let's just go?" Draco says and takes Harry's hand. Kisses it on the palm, then the other side.
"Do you have a date?"
"For?"
"For the wedding?"
"Whenever you wish," says Draco, and he is drawing Harry out of the house. Harry can almost feel the loss of his heroin, but he supposes that's all right. He's not entirely keen on disappearing, now that everything is looking better.
"How did you get here?"
"Same way you did," says Draco, as if there is nothing strange about that.
"Isn't that a bit dangerous? Apparating great distances when high?"
"I wasn't that high."
Harry has to agree that Draco doesn't seem high at all. "How is that?"
"Snape did a sober-up charm on me."
Ah. "Snape."
"He said it was important that I find you immediately."
"Because…?"
"Because he was fairly certain you were going to use again."
"And he determined this how?" Harry isn't entirely certain he likes this, though he's not certain why either.
"I told him you'd left a large amount of muggle money lying on your bed."
"That's it?"
"Well, and what I was doing when you left," Draco admits very softly.
I suppose that might be enough of a clue, he admits to himself. "And how did you know where I was?"
"Ah…well…Shouldn't we Apparate to Hogsmeade from here?"
"That was pathetic."
"I have a tracking charm on your engagement ring," Draco says. "Ready? Three Broomsticks, on three. One, two," and they Apparate together. Then, on to the floo, where they both take the direct route to Snape's chambers. Snape is, of course, waiting.
"Mr Malfoy, Mr Potter, back safely, then."
"Professor Snape," Harry says, and he's not overly pleased at the role Snape has had in preventing his getting a nod on tonight. He’s not even going to think about the tracking charm (which he should have noticed). "Do you still dream of fucking me when you're lying in bed alone?" Yes, that was quite distracting.
Snape stares at him in mute horror, and Harry can scent Draco's alarm. The room is silent, however, until Snape regains his voice. "Your eyes."
"It happened while we were away," says Draco.
"I can't believe that's all the reaction I get with a remark like that one," Harry complains.
"Why are you even trying, Harry?" Draco asks.
Harry shrugs. "Because you've got blowjobs from millions of people while I've been practically celibate?"
"What has that to do with Snape?"
"He has a very sexy voice," Harry says with great authority. He looks at Snape. "And he's a phenomenal lay. What say you, professor? A threesome, perhaps? Chicken sandwich?"
"Merlin save us," Snape mutters. Then, "Get out, Potter. Tomorrow, we'll have to look into what's happened with your eyes."
"I can bleed them back," says Harry, then transfigures his left palm into a mirror and takes a few moments to figure out how to change his eyes back to their original green. It is more difficult than before, when the black had only been cosmetic. It seems he has learnt why Voldemort's eyes kept changing to red. It takes a bit of concentration to keep them something other than natural, now. He restores his own hand. "Better?"
Draco nods.
Snape sighs. "Too much dark magic, Mr Potter."
"Right," Harry agrees. There's nothing to be done about it, now. "But I really can't imagine I've done more than you have," he says.
"It is likely your work with Lucius Malfoy that caused most of this," Snape postulates. "I've never performed an Imperius of that magnitude, and of such a lasting nature."
"And Rita Skeeter, of course," Harry agrees. "And I was seriously contemplating murder when my eyes turned."
"He did seem terribly serious," Draco agrees. Harry remembers the scent of fear.
"Go to sleep, both of you. Come to see me at…2 p.m."
Harry and Draco leave without another word, and Harry lets them into his rooms. He banishes the mound of pound-notes to his trunk, sending those in his pocket to entwine themselves with the others. "Do the eyes really bother you?"
"No," Draco admits. "I think they're rather sexy. That said, I really am fond of your green eyes as well. I'd rather not lose the green for the black."
Harry nods his understanding. "You still reek of marijuana," he says.
"I should shower," Draco says, as if it's a completely new subject. "Wouldn't want you to accidentally ingest any of Parkinson's saliva."
Harry silently agrees.
(chapter 3 continues…)
Of Saint and Steed, and What it Means to be Alone (continued) by colibri
Chapter 3: Of Saint and Steed, and What it Means to be Alone (continued)
"What is this about Rita Skeeter, then?" Draco asks as they sit before Snape's desk. The Professor simply stares at them.
"I've altered her just a bit. Enough that she feels a friendly kinship with me. She would rather not hurt me in her climb to the top of the world of journalism, though she would hurt me if she had to. I've hinted I would do everything in my power to ensure that she has a place at the wedding, as long as her next article about me was positive, which it was."
"It was shocking to me at the time," Snape admits.
"She sounded as if she actually cared about the wedding in a personal way," Draco agrees. "So you wish to allow press at the wedding?"
"I thought Skeeter and Lovegood," Harry admits with a shrug. "We owe Mr Lovegood."
"We owe Luna—if only for dealing with Longbottom," says Draco.
"That's cruel," Harry says, but Draco is right. Neville's confidence level has done nothing but rise since he and Luna got together. He's become…competent—if not exceptional—now. "And Skeeter should be a perfect mouthpiece for the wedding, since everyone will want to know about it anyway."
"I didn't invite the two of you here to discuss your wedding plans."
Harry looks up again from where he had been staring at his hands again. His eyes have, once again, bled to black.
"I've spoken with the Headmaster, and he says there's nothing to be done about it. He did mention, however, that the deciding factor is likely your Lycanthropy."
"What?" says Harry.
"Why?" asks Draco.
"Werewolves are dark creatures," says Snape.
So added to his fundamentally evil nature, the mind warping has turned his eyes black, and there is nothing to be done about it, other than temporary cosmetic alteration.
"That makes no sense," says Draco decisively. "Father was a long-time Dark Arts practitioner and nothing like this ever happened to him."
"Not everyone is prone to this type of metamorphosis, Mr Malfoy. Muggles would likely call it a genetic predisposition."
Harry wonders how much Snape knows about muggle science, but only briefly. "Brilliant," he decides, and stands.
"Where are you going, Mr Potter?" and Snape seems on the verge of displeasure.
"What…do you still need us? There's nothing to be done about the eyes, so I've other things to do."
"Might I remind you, Mr Potter, that you remain a student here, and are still required to treat the staff with respect." Snape stands, and Harry rather likes that the man does not fear him, though he should, and Harry tells him this. In Parseltongue. Snape is not moved. "Now is not the time for another power struggle, Mr Potter, and I do not think you wish to…alter my mind."
"Perhaps I do. Perhaps I wish to keep you as a sex toy, Professor, since you rebuff my advances otherwise."
"I would think Mr Malfoy enough to keep you busy, Mr Potter," eyes squinting, and still, Harry scents no fear on him. And then he remembers, "I know you're terrified of me, Professor. That scent-inhibiting potion is not going to work this time."
"The potion is not to protect me from you, Mr Potter," says Snape tightly, and Harry can't actually tell whether or not the man is lying. "It's to avoid inflaming you, since you've become so very volatile and seem completely unable to control your own impulses."
Harry stares into Snape's eyes, and thinks the Professor is letting his pride lead him astray. It is too easy, with full eye-contact, to force himself into Snape's mind…
…An image of Harry as he stands now, only larger, his blackened eyes dominating an otherwise angelic face…
…A memory full of sensation, of a wanton boy beneath him, the taste of salt skin lingering on his tongue, long, silky hair entwined in his fingers, and the inescapable ecstasy of tight heat round his cock…
…The roiling of his own stomach as he watches, with horror, a wolf presenting, submissive and desperate…
…His own uncontrollable anger when he finds his workroom in a shambles, destroyed by his charge, the air stinking of piss and full of feathers. He pulls his wand and relishes the sensation of his power expanding as he casts Cruciatus, and watches the wolf scream….
Harry is left gasping, but he has kept his feet.
Snape has not fared as well, but he has succeeded in casting Harry out of his mind. He now stands, gasping, on bended knee, his face white as snow, surrounded as it is by black. It emphasises the bruising about his eyes.
Harry has already regained his breath and simply stares. He has no memory of Snape's casting of Cruciatus, but he remembers what brought it on. He'd certainly deserved rebuke, but Cruciatus? And from Snape's reaction, it wasn't only once. The man had enjoyed casting it. "Not so different after all," Harry whispers, but he is interrupted by the door.
"Mr Potter," says Dumbledore, who has entered as if there is nothing at all untoward going on. "If you'll please join me in my offices?" A little smile, but the sadness is there for Harry to see. The worry is there to scent in the air—a mild fear, a hint of dominance and adrenaline.
"I hope to see you later," says Harry as he turns, briefly, to Draco, who simply nods his understanding. Harry leaves then, sparing no glance for Professor Snape.
The journey to Dumbledore's offices is a long, silent one—especially when Harry is itching to take it at glider pace. But they arrive eventually, after Dumbledore has given the password, ('Minstrels'), and take their customary seats. This time, when the Headmaster conjures tea and cakes, Harry takes notice of the magic of it. "Did you learn that from the house elves?" he asks with true curiosity. Dumbledore is using a type of apparative magic, but apparition isn't possible within Hogwarts grounds. Only the Headmaster and the house elves manage it.
"As a matter of fact, it is a type of magic used by the house elves. I've made it a point over the years to learn as much about my fellow intelligent beings as I can. Along the way, I've picked up a few bits of magic."
Harry thinks that sounds fascinating and says so. "Have you studied with the merpeople?" Not because he's particularly interested in them, but because they are particularly difficult to get to know, since they live in a world human wizards cannot share for long.
"There are very, very few peoples I've not studied with, Mr Potter. But that is not why I've brought you here today, though it is related."
A matter of grave import, of course, Harry can hear by the tone. Besides, he's not stupid. "I'm here because I've become evil, and a danger to others."
"You're not evil, Harry," and for some reason, just that one use of Harry's given name makes something inside his chest uncoil the slightest bit, though he'd not really even noticed before. "But I am worried. You've grown very powerful very quickly, and though you've worked hard for your proficiency, you've not had the time to grow into it. To mature into it. And while I by no means mean to imply that you're a child, you must understand that I had lived decades longer than you by the time I had gained as much control as you have.
"There was a wise muggle named Lord Acton, who said, 'Power tends to corrupt, and absolute power corrupts absolutely.' You are still somewhere in between, but you must guard against corruption. It is too easy to disregard morality when there are no consequences for your actions."
Harry sighs. "I don’t' mean to disregard…morality." He doesn't like the way it sounds—the statement, nor the word itself. "Most of the time, I act without thinking. But when I do think, it seems the right answer, to use my power. With Rita Skeeter, for example. I feared she would spread more lies and half-truths, and end up causing a panic. Voldemort has only just been deposed, people are still uncertain. But instead of interviewing me about what happened, or perhaps asking me how I know—how I can be so certain he is actually gone…." Harry sighs. "You know exactly the type of rubbish she would have created instead. And it would have been printed! The Prophet seems to prefer lies to truths, if it has the choice. I wanted to kill her," he admits, mostly curbing the vehemence, "but I did not."
Dumbledore nods. "I understand very well, Harry," he admits, the sadness darkening his eyes again. "I could very easily reach out and destroy her as well. Though I've never developed the particular…talent you've manifested for mind altering magic, I could easily create a charm to do the same, or to affect her in some other way. I could simply cast Imperius or even kill her. It does not take a great deal of power to do these things—to assert my will over her. But I do not. As I learned in my dealings with you, it is not my place to manipulate the wizarding world around me, simply because I feel that I know best, or have more knowledge than others. I work within the confines of the positions I've been elected and appointed to, but try not to impinge on others to the extent that I usurp their free will. It is the sentient being's right to shape its own destiny."
"That is a right I was deprived of a very, very long time ago," Harry says tightly. That life can be so unfair to Harry, and yet require Harry to live up to every standard of fair play!
"It is our right to shape our own destiny, Harry, but it is no one's right to dictate it to the letter. We are all dealt a hand at birth, and with that hand, we must play. We make decisions based upon it, and based upon the circumstances that surround us, which are created by nature, and by the decisions of others. We can never be completely separate from each other."
"Well I find it difficult to draw a line, Professor, round the realm of acceptable. I utilised every trick I could to defeat Voldemort, and some of them were very Dark. I slit his throat from ear to ear and felt no remorse. I tore Wormtail's throat from his body. I made Lucius Malfoy my slave, to tilt the odds in my favour. I fought evil with evil, and I won…for myself, for the entire wizarding world. But now, the wizard I've become—I show the world my darkness with a glance, and they will all wonder whether they've traded one dark lord for another."
"You've hardly attempted to rule," Dumbledore says, but he does not sound dismissive at all. Rather, he sounds as if he is making a suggestion—or, perhaps, asking why Harry has not yet made the attempt.
"I have no interest in ruling," Harry says honestly.
"What do you have an interest in, then?" Dumbledore asks, and finally, the mood feels like it's taken the slightest turn upward.
"I like magic very much," Harry says. "It feels wonderful, physically, when I do magic. But it is also intellectually satisfying, to learn new magic, and to learn new ways of doing things."
"Are you still interested in auror training?" Dumbledore asks.
"I'd rather not spend all of my time seeking out evil—surrounding myself with it. Besides, I feel that combating evil is too much of a temptation. Well…not really temptation but…a moral dilemma. It is too easy to fall into evil, and I really don't wish to do evil, no matter how it may look sometimes."
"What were you doing with Professor Snape earlier, Harry?"
"I was breaking into his mind," Harry says, because he knows it was wrong, though he'd not felt that way at the time. Then, "I was asserting my dominance," as soon as he realises that was what he'd truly been doing. "I think that all of my problems stem from that, actually."
Dumbledore thinks about it for a time, nodding thoughtfully. "Why do you think that would be, Harry?"
"Well, I suppose it could be because I'm at an awkward age, as they all say."
"Do you think that is the reason?" Dumbledore asks, with amusement.
Harry can't help but smirk. "That's likely part of it," he admits. "But…well, something I saw in S—Professor Snape's mind today makes me think that it may go deeper."
The Headmaster's brows rise.
"The wolf's life is defined by pack hierarchy. I was content to follow the Alpha for a long time. I wanted Professor Snape to be the Alpha. Draco's dominated me as well. Everyone has, really. But I've finally come into my power, and part of me feels a need to test everyone—to find my own place in the hierarchy—the place I belong."
"And yet you don't wish to rule?"
"I'm seventeen years old and exhausted already," Harry admits with a snort. "No, I'm simply not that interested in the rest of the world. I'm rather content to practise my magic and spend time with my friends."
"What about family, Harry?"
The question throws Harry for a moment. "Draco will give me that," Harry says.
"His family is also very, very small."
Harry takes a deep breath, then lets it out silently. He's awash with guilt. I killed Draco's father. "I loved him, too," he says, and doesn't sound so defensive, though he is.
"I didn't meant to lay blame, Harry, and you had no intention of killing Lucius Malfoy—of that I am certain. No, I meant only what I said, that Draco's family is nearly as small as yours. Only he and his mother remain, and his mother may never truly accept you."
Harry nods, though he cannot speak on it. It is depressing, to think that Narcissa may hate him forever.
"Harry, there are two things I wanted to bring up, here. But you must listen without that black cloud of depression. You must listen with clarity, all right?"
Harry blinks, but looks up at the Headmaster. He takes a deep, fortifying breath, then nods.
"Firstly, I want you to remember that love is built upon trust. Does that make sense to you?"
Harry nods because it is something he has heard a great deal. But aside from that, when he truly considers it, it does seem true—he had trusted Lucius after turning him, and though it was a result of his own manipulation, he could not help but love Lucius. He also loves Hermione and Ron, and trusts them completely. It is part of the reason he was so startled and even felt betrayed by Ron's behaviour the night at the Indian restaurant. He had never expected Ron to invade him in such a manner.
"The other part is this, Harry: We cannot trust you, who fear you. If we fear that you will violate us, it does not matter why; we simply cannot trust you. Maintaining some abstract notion of morality needn't be your only reason to cultivate control. You must learn to control yourself, or you will be alone." It sounds like a threat, but it is only truth, and it is a truth that Harry finds new to his consideration, and terrifying, as well. "Tom Riddle appealed to wizards' fears, and turned them to his cause. He used fear to gain followers, and then to keep them in line. He sacrificed friendship and love for power because he did not see their value.
"But you do, Harry." Dumbledore's eyes shine with earnestness, and with passion. "Do not allow fear to push you into corruption. Do not allow fear to blind you to the value of love."
Harry is nearly too terrified to even think clearly. To be alone—completely alone… He has had nearly no love for more than half of his life, but even his aunt was better than being completely alone. He has gained a bit of a family here at Hogwarts—love from a few, camaraderie from more—but it is so easy to alienate people. It’s so easy to act without realising what he is doing. It’s amusing, terrifying first-years; but what will those first-years remember? That he is evil? Will he, like his father before him, harass a promising young genius into a bitter, underappreciated wizard like Snape? He, of all of the students here, should know better. He has suffered more harassment and bullying than nearly anyone else in the school. Only a right bastard would turn round and give the same treatment he has hated so much himself. It is what he'd always hated so much about Snape.
"I think I understand," Harry says, nodding absently. He is only barely speaking to the Headmaster now. He is thinking…about Ron and Hermione; about the Weasleys; about Narcissa Malfoy, and Draco; about family; about goodwill, and camaraderie; about poor, harried Colin Creevey, and other students who have, throughout the years, supported him in their own way: Ernie Macmillan, Luna Lovegood, and, of course, Neville Longbottom. "Poor Neville," Harry murmurs. Neville got all the horror and none of the glory: lost his parents to insanity instead of death, but still at the hands of Voldemort; ended up nearly a squib, barely able to defend himself with magic. But he's, at least, learned to stand up to his grandmum, and with Luna's influence, has managed to improve in his use of magic. "I really do care about them," Harry finally admits to himself. Even Draco.
"That's good, Harry. It would be a sad life, indeed, if we had to go through it alone."
"It would be Voldemort's life."
Dumbledore nods, but says nothing.
"I should attempt a reversal of what I did to Ms Skeeter," Harry says, though he's still not overjoyed about it. He'd much rather keep her on the payroll. "It would be right."
Dumbledore twinkles, then says, hushed, "Perhaps after the wedding?"
Harry's jaw drops.
"A bit of humour, Harry. You must try to keep it light. Life is too full of sadness to be grave all the time. Ms Skeeter did earn a bit of retribution. It was simply the method you chose that was…intrusive."
Harry recognises a euphemism when he hears one. "Right," he agrees doubtfully.
"That said, you may not be able to reverse the damage. You would not wish to cause more damage, whilst attempting to rectify the other."
Harry finds this far too depressing to continue thinking about. "Not to change the subject…” though it very much is, “but…well, what do you know about the potion Draco and Professor Snape have been working on?"
The Headmaster lifts his brow and sits back in his seat. "Well, officially, nothing, of course. They haven't consulted with me about it."
"And unofficially?"
"Shouldn't you be asking them?"
"I want to know whether I can take the potion and not bear a child cursed with Lycanthropy. I really think I'd be the better mother."
Dumbledore's laugh is a great, round thing that makes Harry embarrassed, but makes him smile as well. And when he thinks about the absurdity of it all, he laughs as well.
But the Headmaster does not know the answer to Harry's question, and the decision is left to him, and to Draco, and for another time.
(end chapter 3)
Risk by colibri
Chapter 4: Risk
Harry goes first to Snape's rooms and knocks on the door. He thinks he would not be surprised if Snape refused to speak with him, but neither is he surprised when the doors open, and he is able to enter. Snape sits in his customary high-backed chair and stares into the fire. He does not acknowledge Harry's presence, so Harry begins. "I came to apologise," he says quietly, "because I care about you. What I did was thoughtless and, frankly, beneath me. I shouldn't wish that type of violation on someone I don't care about, much less someone I do." He takes a deep breath, thinks about the speech he has made, and decides that it is true. So he nods a little to himself, and waits for some indication from its recipient.
"I'm to accept your apology because you stoop to giving it?" Snape asks, his voice dangerously quiet and laced with that ever-present sarcasm.
Harry can't help it. He snorts. Snape is a piece of work. "No. You've already done all you're supposed to do. I shan't tell you how to behave. I care about you; I've told you that. I regret my earlier behaviour; I've told you that. You've already listened, and I think that's about what I could fairly expect from you."
"Excellent. And since I've fulfilled my societal duties, as well as my responsibilities to The Great Harry Potter, Saviour of the Wizarding World, I bid you good night and pleasant dreams." He still hasn't once looked at Harry. He sits holding an empty cup of tea, and Harry can smell the lingering traces of chamomile and mint.
"Well, since you're such a git, which is no surprise, of course, I will add something before I go. I’ve had a discussion with the Headmaster. I’ve made the decision that I do not wish to be alone for the rest of my life, and it requires that I behave a bit better than I've got into the habit of behaving. I will say this, though: I hope that you made a conscious decision at some point, that you wish to be alone for the rest of your life, because it would be a right shame if you pushed everyone away by default, through your sheer bitterness and sour personality."
"Thank your father and his gang of hooligans for that," Snape hisses, turning to Harry, finally.
"No, thank yourself for that, Professor. I can't, in good conscience, blame Voldemort for what I did to you today. It was a choice I made. My father's abuse helped to shape you, just as your abuse helped to shape me. But in the end, you have made your own choices. You've chosen to be petty, belittling, belligerent, and bitter. I have decided to take a different path. So I will accept your wishes for a good night, and return them in a different spirit. Good night, Professor Snape. I truly hope that you sleep well and peacefully, and that you find rest."
He leaves because he wants Snape to think instead of lashing out in fear, for once, and when he returns to his rooms, Draco is there, revising. He looks uncertain when Harry enters, but relaxes immediately when Harry smirks. "I hope you were afraid for me, and not of me," Harry says.
"I was thinking more of the chances that I might pull a bit of tail tonight, and it's looking promising."
"You've an exceptional knack for telling such things," Harry teases. "Have you been revising Divination whilst I wasn't watching."
"Most certainly not," Draco says with a curl of the lip. "It's a muggle subject called psychology, actually. Quite useful."
Harry doesn't doubt that Draco has been doing a bit of independent psychology revision. He only doubts his own degree of interest, when compared with the prospect of sex. Luckily, Draco agrees.
* * *
Harry and Draco take breakfast together in the Great Hall the next morning, at the Gryffindor table, since Millicent Bulstrode is the only seventh year Slytherin who can stand Harry—or at least, admit to not minding his presence. In contrast, everyone is still so very infatuated with Draco, even if they despise him, that he could sit at any table without difficulty. Ron and 'Mione have, of course, grown accustomed to him now and conversation isn't even stilted.
"Have you finalised any wedding plans yet?" she asks almost as soon as she and Ron arrive, sitting down before them. Ron is half-asleep but still manages to shovel fried eggs, mushrooms, fried tomatoes and kippers onto his plate. Harry still can't fathom how Ron eats this way—how Harry used to eat this way himself.
"No," Draco replies before taking another bite of his crêpes. Harry has been impressed all morning at how Draco makes such an airy-fairy breakfast look elegantly masculine instead of poufy, while Harry makes oatmeal porridge look like a little girl's breakfast. "I believe our latest discussion involved elopement, but that proposition was vetoed by a highly interested party."
"And who was that?" asks Ron.
"I, of course," Draco says and finishes his last pancake, loading his fork with the remaining crêpe, whipped cream, custard, and strawberry jam. He eats that final bite, then sits back in his chair and drinks several mouthfuls of water. "I may be willing to have a small, intimate wedding. I may even prefer that idea. But we will not elope. It's not dignified."
"Snogging in the corridors, however, is perfectly dignified," says Hermione with a smirk.
"When it's with me, it is not merely dignified, it is positively noble," says Draco with all the arrogance a true Malfoy should be able to muster. He's very sexy when he's being arrogant, Harry thinks. "Regardless, I'm going to speak with Mother today, and we'd certainly not finalise anything without her."
Conversation dies as Hermione and Ron sit in their awkward silence and Harry battles nausea. It still horrifies him, the thought of going to an inpatient drugs-treatment program at St. Mungo's. He still imagines what it would have been like if he'd had to go there. Draco is the one to break the silence. "I'm off now, Harry. Give me a lift?"
Harry is slightly startled by the request. "You've no portkey?"
"Don't need a portkey do I? We've got out licenses now."
"Of course," Harry agrees. He gets a warm feeling in his belly that Draco simply wants to spend a bit more time with him. Well—and attract more attention. Since yesterday, Harry has decided that he's actually grown fond of Draco and his ways, as long as he doesn't take it all so seriously. "I'll be back," he says to his friends and they nod. He turns to Draco, then, and realises, "You want me to start here, don't you."
Draco looks at him as if Harry has somehow become utterly daft, and Draco cannot fathom how. It's not as offensive as it sounds. "I can't believe you need to ask that, Potter."
"Right," Harry agrees. They stand, then move into the aisleway between the Gryffindor and Hufflepuff tables, before Harry condenses air about them, locking them together side-by-side, then condenses a glider beneath them and whisks them out of the Hall, out the main doors, and along the path toward the edge of Hogwarts grounds. They tear through the air because Draco appreciates a fast ride, then Harry sets them down gently.
"Brilliant," says Draco and smiles slightly before pulling Harry into a kiss. "When I first realised you were too beautiful to ignore, I never imagined that you'd learn to make such a grand exit."
"Ah, well, I suppose the training has paid off."
Draco kisses him again and ends up groping him a bit. Harry's only complaint is the fact that it's only a tease. "Mmm…I should return before supper," Draco says.
"Does she know you're coming?" Harry asks and looks into Draco's eyes. He finds them completely uninformative, but Draco's scent is far more revealing. Draco is nervous.
"Of course." Back to cool arrogance, which means she's not pleased. "You need to pay better attention to your eyes, Potter. They're slipping."
Harry frowns and holds up his hand, in which he's conjured a glass, and sees that Draco is correct. There is a thick circlet of black surrounding his irises. He corrects the error with a thought. "Was it like that all morning?" he asks and notes how distressed he sounds. He takes a deep breath. It's not the end of the world, after all—he was only talking to his friends this morning.
"No," Draco says, softening slightly, definitely taking pity on Harry. "After our last kiss," he murmurs. "I would tell you if you'd been slipping."
Just like you told me now, Harry thinks and nods, the warmth returning to his belly. Yes, he's grown quite fond of Draco Malfoy, and trusts him. Completely. No matter how angry Draco's silence makes him on occasion. "I'll see you this evening, then."
"I'll firetalk you if plans change, all right?"
Harry is, once again, shocked. This time, by Draco's consideration. He almost forgets Draco had actually asked him a question, but remembers to nod, and say, "Thanks."
A pop announces Draco's departure. Harry condenses a glider to take him back to the Great Hall, though he disperses it before entering and rejoining his friends, who are now finished eating. They look up with curiosity when he sits. "Plans for today, then?" Ron asks.
"Nothing special," Harry admits.
"Revision?" asks Hermione.
Harry shrugs. "I thought I might look into something new today," he says.
"What?" she asks.
"I thought I might go spend some time with Dobby, if he's free."
"Dobby?" asks Ron, as if Harry were planning to fuck Dobby.
"Yes, Dobby," Harry says with mock irritation. He's actually amused at Ron's imagination. "Would you like to join us?" all innocence.
"Harry, I want no part in whatever freak show you're going to put on with a house elf," Ron says decisively, "but I suppose I should thank you for offering."
"My pleasure, Ronnikins. My pleasure. But on a different subject…" He waits for both pairs of eyes before discreetly setting a privacy sphere around them. "I need to ask that both of you let me know if you happen to see anything odd about my eyes, all right?"
Ron looks doubtful. "Odd?"
"Yeah," Harry says, and realises that this level of detail will never work with Ron. "If the colour were to change, for example."
"Why would the colour of your eyes change, Harry? And why did you put up a privacy shield?" Nothing gets by Hermione. Not when she's paying attention.
"It's not overly important," Harry says, but is quickly interrupted.
"Actually, it is," she counters. "If you've been noticing changes, that is important. Especially with your recent battle with Voldemort." The pedant is quickly emerging. "Did you know that some magical races are particularly prone to externally manifesting symptoms of certain types of magics use, especially those particularly anathema to them?"
"Huh?" says Ron, not surprisingly.
Harry, however, is nervous, because Hermione obviously knows all about this, and will immediately know the problem once she talks herself into enough information. Then again, what difference does it make, if they know? He's not certain, but there is something…well…embarrassing about having the problem in the first place. "Really," says Harry and tries to sound indifferent to discourage her.
It doesn’t work. "For example, if a mermaid were to use too much earth magic, she would start manifesting certain types of side-effects, like a browning and hardening of the skin, or eyes becoming brown. Witches and wizards can manifest some of the same symptoms, though it's much more rare, the less mixed we are with non-human races. If you're manifesting symptoms, you should take it as a warning, Harry!" quietly, but with great intensity. "Are you?"
"Am I what?" Harry says, and he knows it's pathetic and useless.
"Harry, you are!" she says.
"Am what?" because he, apparently, still hasn't learnt his lesson.
"What is happening to your eyes?" she asks and peers more closely. "Is it happening regularly now? Or only when you perform certain types of magic?"
Harry sighs. "It's all the time," he admits, finally.
"And what, specifically, has happened? I can't see a difference," she says, though she has been staring.
"That's because I'm masking it with a cosmetic charm," he says and looks about to make sure no one is in his line of sight, before allowing the charm to dissipate, exposing his coal-black eyes. The stereo gasp is not quite what he'd hoped for. He reapplies the charm almost instantaneously. "It's not that scary," he mutters.
"Have you been using that much dark magic?" Hermione asks.
"Dark magic??" asks Ron, because he's always a few steps behind, if he's even on the same course.
"Yes," says Harry. "Mostly because of the Lycanthropy, but also while I was gearing to battle Voldemort. And, well, a bit against Rita Skeeter as well. But I'm being careful now. I've had a talk with the Headmaster, and we've come to an understanding."
"Goodness, Harry," says 'Mione, shaking her head. "I'd no idea…." She doesn't know what to say, that much is obvious. She looks at Harry as if she doesn't know him. Perhaps she doesn't.
"I don't want this to change anything," Harry blurts, then feels his cheeks colouring. He'd not meant to say it aloud. I don't want to lose you over this, he thinks once his mouth is under control.
"What do you mean?" asks Ron, baffled. "It already 'as, 'asn't it? I mean, you said you and Dumbledore have come to an understanding, righ'?"
"He didn't mean that, Ron," says Hermione with a sigh. Harry feels like he is always wondering how she can manage. "He meant with us."
"Oh," says Ron, then looks across at Harry. "Well, it might be nice if you'd talk to us every so often, mate. I mean, you might trust us, after all this time. Who all knows about this? The eyes, I mean?"
"You, Draco, Snape, and Professor Dumbledore."
Ron seems to consider this for a few moments, then shrugs. "At least we're not the last to know," he says. "But we're likely the last you'll tell, aren't we?"
"That was my plan," Harry agrees.
"You used to come to us first, Harry," Ron says, and Harry is struck, again, (as happens periodically), by the lightness of Ron's ginger hair and lashes. He's like Draco in that regard. They both look like their faces are left naked.
Of course, Ron is also correct, because while he's a bit clueless in the whole communication and feelings aspect of relationships, he's not actually stupid. "It's been a difficult year," Harry says, and he is attempting an apology, though it's not exactly the most direct way. He knows more about communication and feelings than Ron, but that doesn't mean it's easier for him. "I do trust you…. I trust you to care about my happiness more than anyone else," and it is absolutely true. Draco doesn't care overly much for Harry's happiness, especially if Harry's happiness isn't required for his own. Harry trusts Draco not to hurt him anymore, and to actively work to keep Harry safe, but that is for Draco's benefit, not Harry's. Still, he thinks that even that is changing—that Draco is, perhaps, beginning to see Harry's happiness as useful in securing his own.
"Well, that's good, Harry," says Hermione matter-of-factly. "Perhaps you'd like to join us on a trip to Hogsmeade, then."
And Harry says, "That'd be brilliant," before he has a chance to think about it, because he should go. He should spend time with them. And if they're interested in having him about when they could just as easily be fucking, then he should jump at the opportunity.
Besides, Draco isn't here.
It's nearly worthwhile merely for the look of surprise on their faces.
(chapter 4 continues...)
Risk (continued) by colibri
Chapter 4: Risk (continued)
The walk to Hogsmeade is only moderately comfortable, as it is still spring, and it's only about 8 degrees out, and grey. But there's something to be said for good company, and it's not very difficult for Harry to set up a warming bubble about them. It’s not nearly as difficult as keeping his eyes from reverting to their new default colour.
"Your eyes've gone black again," Ron says at one point about halfway there.
Harry sighs. "I must have some sort of block. It's the most difficult thing for me, to keep that charm going." It's actually a bit of a relief to let it go completely. "It's wearying."
"Is there some way to reverse what's happened?" Ron asks, looking mostly to his girlfriend.
"I haven't seen any methodology. I'll have to research it further."
Harry smirks over at Ron, who seems to be thinking the same thing: Hermione has never not found an answer, once she decides to research something further. He decides it should be all right for now, to rest a bit—let his eyes remain as they are—until they meet someone, or get to Hogsmeade.
They walk a bit further in silence before Hermione asks, "Were you really discussing eloping?"
"Only in hushed whispers in the wee hours of the morning," Harry says with a smirk. A wave of fear had come over him at the thought of a large, semi-public wedding and its accompanying press. And Narcissa Malfoy, of course. The mere thought of her still upsets his stomach. "As Draco said, it was immediately vetoed. But…I didn't really want that anyway." They continue a bit further, before it strikes him. "What about the two of you? Have you thought about marriage?"
Ron snorts and Harry immediately steals a glance at Hermione. But she seems not to be offended. In fact, she seems to agree. But it is Ron who speaks. "A bit young for that, aren't we?"
"You're older than I am," says Harry, a bit confused.
"I'm not," Hermione corrects primly. She is, of course, less than two months Harry's junior.
"Right, well, that explains it, then," says Harry with a smirk.
"Well, we didn't think you should be getting married either, then, did we?" adds Ron. "We're not our parents—we needn't marry as soon as we leave Hogwarts."
"Besides," Hermione interjects, "who's to say we're even compatible that way? We barely know ourselves at this stage. Marriage is a daunting commitment, don't you think, Harry?"
Harry shrugs. What does he know about commitment? "I suppose so."
"Once you marry, it's all finished," Ron continues. "I mean, you and Draco can't even go a sodding month without breaking it off. What makes you think a marriage is going to work?"
Harry waits for Hermione to berate Ron for his rudeness, but she does not. That means she agrees with him. "I didn't really think about it," Harry says honestly.
"Why did he even ask you!?" Harry hadn't realised that Ron had been so…emotional about this.
"Because he wants us to be together?" That seems a bit too obvious to Harry, for Ron to bother asking the question.
"You're together now," Hermione points out.
"I think he wants it to be a bit more formal," Harry hedges.
"But why?" Ron presses.
Harry growls internally, then blurts, "I think he simply replaced his betrothal to Cécile with one to me. Because I refused to be his concubine."
"Concubine?" says Hermione with some humour. "That's an interesting word. Is that what he called it?"
"No, that's what I called it," Harry bites back. "He'd planned to marry her and fuck me on the side. He wished for me to live with him, likely in some small cottage on the grounds, and be his willing arse while he chatted up polite society and posed smilingly with his lovely wife and made an heir with her." It stirs Harry up a bit when he thinks about it, though it's nowhere near Draco's current desire. Well, except the fucking part.
"Well, I'm not surprised," says Hermione, and it reminds Harry of how she used to sound back in first year—still does, really, though it's less annoying when he's not completely clueless. She no longer uses that tone on him very often. "He doesn't value anyone outside himself very highly, does he?"
"His mother and father he values very highly, indeed. Or, at least, he did," Harry amends. "I'm not certain how he feels about his mother just now." Harry knows that Draco is much more upset about losing his father than he can admit to anyone, and feels particularly badly about never having made it up with the man. They could have worked together, at the end, but hadn't known it. "And though I hate to sound arrogant, I know that he values me highly as well."
"Amazing, really," Ron mutters.
"I understand hating him," Harry growls, "but he's not the same person we met in first year, hurling epithets and scheming to get us expelled."
"Well that's just it, Harry," Hermione says and turns to him, hands on her hips, as if about to give a lecture. "He is that same person. He may have matured somewhat, though how much is still at issue, but he is still that same boy who called me 'mudblood', and called Ron 'weasel'."
"There's nothing wrong with weasels," Harry mutters, but is ignored (and rightly so). "And we called him ferret-boy."
"He's a git, Harry!" Ron exclaims in exasperation.
"So are you!" Harry counters heatedly. "And so am I! I don't care! I love him!"
It takes more than a few seconds for Harry to realise what he's said, but realise he does, and then colours. Like a beet. "Shite," he mutters.
"It's good to know things like that," Ron murmurs, all of the fight gone out of him.
"If you love him," says Hermione, "then marrying him might be all right."
Harry sighs. "What do I know? I don't know if I love him."
"Then we're back to where we started,” says Hermione. “Why are you getting married to him at all? The betrothal to that Cécile is off anyway, and surely the two of you can be monogamous without marriage keeping you in line."
"We want to have children," says Harry, and realises how incredibly strange it sounds. "At least one," he amends.
"And who, exactly, is going to do that for you?" asks Hermione, an air of trepidation impossible to overlook. "I am not going to be your surrogate."
"The plan is that one of us bear the child," Harry admits. "I think it should be me, but we're somewhat worried about passing Lycanthropy down to the child."
"Well, surely that's the least of your worries," Hermione says with a confused frown. "I mean, what if the baby were to come and you were in the middle of your change? Or even more, what would happen during your change the rest of the time? Nine cycles, with a growing foetus?"
Harry hadn't even thought of that. He feels immensely more depressed. "I am really beginning to hate my life," he mutters.
"It's not the first time," says Ron, and when he notices the look of doom Harry is levelling at him, he shrugs. "Well it's not. And it's certainly justified…. Perhaps you should…you know…fix your eyes again."
Because now they're here, and Harry is already in imminent danger of being spotted. It is times like these he wishes wizards wore sunglasses. Wishing, however, will not make that so, and so he reasserts the cosmetic charm.
They pass the Three Broomsticks and head directly to Honeydukes for a pick-me-up. A handful of chocolate frogs each does nicely, though Ron ends up finishing most of them, and they are soon ready to continue their main quest, which is actually Hermione's. It would have been a greater surprise had they not gone to Bok & Wyrm's bookstore and spent hours there, but Hermione has rarely been anything but predictable in her desires. Besides, it is equally predictable that they will end their day at the Three Broomsticks with a mug of butterbeer and quiet conversation.
It should also, however, have been predictable that they would be noticed, and Harry is positively gritting his teeth by the time they sit down to wait for Rosmerta. Ron and Hermione are not doing much better. "I would ask why they're all staring," Ron murmurs, trying not to move his lips, "but I know already and really just wish they'd leave off."
"We could go," Harry murmurs in reply, already exhausted. Besides, he rather hopes that Draco has got back early. It’s unrealistic, Harry knows, but at least he'd like to be about if Draco were to happen to firetalk him. And he's also bought a book he's quite keen on starting—a bit of research on the Animagus transformation.
"Why don't they approach you?" Hermione wonders. "I mean, it's not as if you haven't been here millions of times in the past. People rarely had difficulty speaking to you then."
Harry has to agree, though he rather hopes no one will get up the nerve to join them.
"Harry! Oh, hi, Ron, Hermione…."
Well, he supposes that's all right. "All right, Colin?" Harry replies.
"Creevey," says Ron.
"Good afternoon, Colin," says Hermione primly. "Would you care to join us?"
Colin takes a look at the bench Ron and Hermione share, looks at the other, which holds only Harry, and Harry can hear Colin's heart begin to hammer, before Colin slides into the booth, onto the bench beside Harry. "Thanks," he says a little breathlessly.
Madam Rosmerta glides over to the table presently and takes orders, only to disappear again.
"Are you here alone?" Hermione asks with a frown. It reminds Harry that she's Head Girl this year. It's really so easy to forget, when she's always behaved so (relatively) responsibly, and attempted to keep everyone out of trouble. Nothing's really changed with respect to her, over the years.
"No, I came with them," he says and points over to another table full of mostly Gryffindors, including Seamus, Dean, Neville and Luna. "Just came over to say hello," he says, and sneaks a look at Harry before colouring sweetly and staring ahead at Hermione. It takes him a few moments before he smiles brightly (and a bit stiffly). "Hello!"
Ron attempts to hide a snort behind a hand, but is entirely unsuccessful. He manages to rein himself in after a moment though, then offers his own, "Hello!" Harry notices, for the first time in a long while, how sexy Ron's voice is and groans aloud. Accidentally. "What?" asks Ron, but it's too defensive to be genuine.
"Nothing at all," says Harry, and pretends he'd meant to groan. He moves against the wall and turns toward Colin—it's a good move, he thinks, because it allows him to put space between them and keep an eye on the boy, whilst still making it look like he's being friendly. "Anything exciting, then, Colin?" Harry asks, just as Madam Rosmerta comes to deliver their butterbeer.
Colin has to take a deep breath before turning to Harry, but he does face Harry, and though his eyes seem to swim a bit, he neither shies away nor loses his train of thought. "I needed more film," he says. "Dervish & Banges."
"Of course," Harry says with a small smile, because he wants to be cheerful and friendly, but this is all slightly disconcerting.
"I need to complete my portfolio," he adds.
"Portfolio?" Harry's not certain what that means. "Are you trying for something?"
"I'd like to try for wedding photographer," says Colin and colours again. "Your wedding, I mean."
Harry blinks, and he can see Ron's jaw drop out of the corner of his eye. Hermione appears equally surprised, if more gracefully so. "Er," says Harry, and that is all he can get out for several long, long moments. It’s the dreaded time-stop. But then, "Well, if you'd like to photograph the wedding, I certainly wouldn't stop you," he says, and thinks he's managed not to sound too uncivilized.
"No offence meant, Harry," Colin says with some apology, "but it's not really you I need to convince. Everyone rather assumes that the Malfoys will be making all of the decisions regarding the ceremony and arrangements, and I would like to be the official photographer."
Harry wants to be shocked at that, but he isn't. He just sighs and feels depressed. "Can't even make decisions about my own wedding," he mutters.
"Don't be silly, Harry," says Hermione, all matter-of-fact with a splash of matron. She's really too young for that tone, but she's been using it with them since she was eleven. "You can make any decisions you wish. You're one of the most powerful wizards of our century. If you wish for Colin to photograph your wedding, Colin will photograph your wedding."
"But I don't know anything about…" he is struggling for words, because he really doesn't know anything about…"wedding photographers and…arrangements."
"Most people don't," Hermione says with great authority. "That's why people research. I know that in the muggle world, girls anticipating their weddings spend hours a day poring over mags and books and the like, choosing dresses, cakes, shoes, flower arrangements, venues. And photographers all have portfolios, so that you can compare and see whose style you prefer."
"Of course, everyone wishes to be a part of this wedding," Colin offers, "so we'll be submitting portfolios to you unsolicited, hoping to be picked."
"You know, Harry," Hermione continues, "you really should take some responsibility for this wedding. It will, hopefully, be the only one you get."
It sounds like a bother, Harry thinks, but he supposes Hermione is right. After all, she tends to be. "I suppose I'll see your portfolio, then," Harry says to Colin, then drains his butterbeer in one go. "I need to get back—speak to Draco." He looks to Ron and Hermione. "Sorry, but thanks for today."
"We should get back as well," Hermione says with a shrug. "Revision. NEWTs are just around the corner, aren't they."
Ron groans, but he stands. Harry drops a couple of galleons on the table and Colin gets up hurriedly to slide out of the booth, letting Harry out as well. "Er," Harry offers, "you can walk back with us, if you like," to Colin.
"That's all right," Colin says and smiles. "Thanks. But they're expecting me back," and he gestures vaguely toward the table where his friends are sitting rowdily.
"Look forward to seeing your portfolio," Harry offers.
"Well, you've seen some of it already," Colin murmurs. "I think I’ve a feel for my subject that the other applicants won't be able to match."
Harry is left shocked again, staring as Colin returns to the mostly-Gryffindor table.
Ron snorts in disbelief. "Did my ears deceive me?" he teases, "or did little Colin Creevey just blast you with a bit o' innuendo? Harry Potter, the Town Bike."
Harry is surprised at how nasty it sounds, but is far from speechless with the shock. "Jealous you've been refused your ride?"
It's Ron's turn to stare, agape, whilst Hermione lets loose with a bark of shocked laughter, which she quickly stifles. "Harry," she chides, once she's got control of herself and they've made it back into the open air.
"He's the one called me a bike," Harry complains—why should he be the one reprimanded when it was Ron's boorishness.
"I was only going to say that it was an impressive return, Harry," Hermione offers, hands up in defence. "And fix your eyes, Harry. You're bleeding black again."
"Fuck it," says Harry and pulls a sickle from his pocket. He transfigures it into a pair of sunglasses and slips them on, then lets his eyes go natural.
"Fuck me," breathes Ron.
"I don't top," says Harry, predictably, "want a lift?"
"A lift?" Hermione asks.
"I didn't mean for you to actually fuc—"
"I know, Ron," Harry interrupts. "And a lift back to the castle." He condenses air beneath himself until he is hovering half a meter above the ground. He ignores the various people staring at them.
Hermione looks sceptical, but Ron knows a bit of fun when he sees it. "Fuck, yeah!" he says immediately, and Harry brings him in. Hermione seems to decide there will be no harm, then nods, and Harry brings her in as well, before beginning to move them, slowly, toward Hogwarts. After a few seconds, they are flying along at a nice clip—about thirty kilometres per hour. They make it back very quickly, where Harry deposits them all outside the main entrance and they walk inside.
"Do you use magic for everything?" Hermione asks, though she sounds more curious than berating.
"Mostly," Harry says. "I don't think about it at all anymore. But I've not done any dark magic lately," which is the important thing, of course. "Be seeing you, then."
"Cheers, Harry," say Ron and Hermione together, and Harry condenses another glider to take him back to his rooms, where his wards are down. He stands well away from the door before opening it with a wave.
But it's only Draco. "Hey," Harry says brightly, entering quickly and closing the door behind himself. But his mood is quickly deflated. "What's wrong?"
"Where were you?" Draco says from his position on the bed, where he is slouched against the wall and obviously working on a pisser. He's holding a bottle of something Harry doesn't think is firewhisky. Nope, definitely beer. That's good, at least. But it can't possibly be the first.
"Hogsmeade?" Harry offers, uncertain what tack he should take. He knows Draco is going to yell at him—that he can already guess. The key will be remembering that this has nothing to do with him. Harry would bet his magic on that this is something to do with Narcissa. "I needed something to do whilst awaiting your return."
"You were supposed to be here, where I could reach you!" He's not yelling, yet, but that's likely because he's had too much to drink already. "I tried to firetalk you."
…Still not certain what to do. Harry feels like it's important, his reaction now. He wants to get defensive—his entire body is screaming that Draco has no right to do this to him, that Draco shouldn't speak to him in this fashion, that Draco shouldn't take out his frustrations on Harry. But then they'll have a row, and Harry's not even angry. And neither is Draco, Harry is betting. "I'm sorry," he says and approaches cautiously. I'm here now, he thinks but does not say. Draco hates it when people point out the obvious.
It kind of works, Harry thinks. Draco sinks in on himself instead of attacking, which is something. He seems to have forgotten about the bottle of…Harry looks more closely. Goddard's Fuggle-Dee-Dum. Harry is surprised Draco would be seen drinking something with such a ridiculous name, but Harry finds the smell absolutely fascinating. It's a nice change from firewhisky. "Were you trying long, Draco? To reach me?"
Draco doesn't answer. He only sits there. But at least he doesn't object when Harry sits down beside him on the bed. This is a coup, Harry thinks with surprise. He's facing Draco's perfect profile now, and dares reach a hand out to lay gently upon Draco's far cheek, which he cannot see. Harry is up on his knees for leverage, and when Draco does not object, he comes near enough to brush soft lips against Draco's right cheek once, twice, thrice, before sitting back a bit again. He brings his hand to rest in his lap with the other. "Are you tired?" he asks.
Draco sighs, holds out his empty beer bottle and says, "Evanesco." The bottle disappears.
"You've got very good at that," Harry says, impressed.
"Improvement requires only practise. Your Latin is still appalling."
Now that is a good sign, and Harry stifles his smirk. "I've not been practising," he agrees.
"Why are you wearing sunglasses, Harry?" Draco drawls lazily before turning his face toward Harry, eyes half-lidded.
Harry had entirely forgotten. He pulls them off and reverses the transfiguration, leaving him with a sickle again, which he puts in his pocket with the rest.
"Ah," says Draco. "Can't keep the charm going?"
"It's tiring. My body doesn't want to."
Draco frowns and it actually looks sympathetic. Harry thinks he may have been wrong about how drunk Draco is. In fact, it seems that Draco is not at all drunk. "Mother is sick," he says.
Harry frowns. "Why?"
"Withdrawal, they said."
"It won't last long, though," Harry says with a shrug.
"They said it could last a week, even with their help."
"A week?"
"She's been abusing the potion for many, many years," Draco says and looks tired again. "But at least she doesn't hate me anymore. She's distracted by her misery."
"It will pass," Harry says with a confidence he absolutely feels. "Will you return tomorrow?"
Draco nods. "I have to."
"No you don't. You want to, because you love her, and she's your family. What's the point in pretending you haven't a choice when you do, and you've made a noble choice?"
"I don't want to see her like that."
Harry shrugs. "You shouldn't. I wouldn't want to see you like that."
"I don't ever want to have to see you like that," Draco says in all seriousness. "The other night—that was too close, Harry."
"One hit would not have put me in your mother's bed."
"You've already been there," Draco says with disbelief in every line of his body. "When you first got here."
"I was not. You never even saw."
"Snape told me," stubbornly.
"I was settling the Lycanthropy then. It wasn't heroin withdrawal. I was only chipping by that point."
"Chipping? What the fuck is that?"
"I was only using a little bit. Not enough to get any real withdrawal symptoms. Nothing very uncomfortable. And not too often. Only enough to get by. And I was eating, unlike your mother. So I was in much better shape."
"You don't even eat now," Draco mutters, but holds a hand up to stop Harry from protesting. "I know, she eats less. Still, Harry. It makes me nervous to hear you speak this way. I don't want you to relapse."
"I won't relapse, Draco. Just because I wasn't a screaming addict doesn't mean I want to go back to using. It is a bit of a waste. The high is…incomparable," though Harry really isn't thinking about it just at the moment. Besides, Draco is looking a bit ill at that, so Harry rushes on, "But it's truly a loser drug. I have too much to live for, now."
Draco blinks in surprise, but quickly wipes the look off of his face. "Oh, really," he says, as if he doesn't care that much.
It reminds Harry of today's trip to Hogsmeade, and his meeting with Colin Creevey. "I've decided to involve myself in the wedding. I want to help choose a photographer."
Now Draco can't hide the shock. "You what?"
"I want to help choose a photographer," and even though he feels a bit defensive and nervous, he manages to hide it all with an air of confidence he's not quite certain he owns.
"Why a photographer?" Draco asks. "Why not a venue?"
"A venue?" Harry asks with surprise. "I thought it would be at the Manor."
"It doesn't have to be at the manor. In fact, we may not want it to be at the seat of my father's evil power…the Dark Lord's home away from home."
Harry hadn't even thought about it. "I should like to help choose a venue as well," he says. Snap decisions.
Draco turns to him and peers into his eyes, sceptically, for several long moments. But then he snorts and smirks. He says, "You're serious," as if it surprises him. Harry's not certain it's entirely fair for Draco to be surprised at that. He hasn't been completely disinterested, regarding the wedding. They've certainly discussed a few things about it…like possible dates. And…well…whether or not to elope, of course. "Well, then, all right," Draco says. He leans forward to peck Harry on the lips, but it rapidly turns into a snog of grand proportions. It seems like hours before they part again. Only it's not. Draco is still panting when he speaks again, "I'm glad, you know."
"Good," Harry agrees, and wonders whether Draco might be up for fucking him now. He insinuates a hand to check, and finds that the necessary pieces are, indeed, ready. "Perhaps you could show me how very glad you are?"
"I'd be glad to," Draco agrees.
Harry would be proud of how deftly he's handled the situation this evening, but he's entirely too busy to gloat about that just now.
(end chapter 4)
NEWTs by colibri
Chapter 5: NEWTs
As luck would have it, NEWTs happen to coincide, in part, with the full moon. Harry is unconcerned, though Hermione is absolutely beside herself. "What if you start losing touch!?" she is wailing. "What if you lose control of your magic?? What if—"
"What if you start humping the WEA tester's leg?" Ron asks with mock gravitas.
"I'll be too busy sucking him off," Harry replies. "I think I'll be getting NEWTs I haven't even revised."
Ron snickers while Harry leers most lasciviously. Hermione, however, is not impressed. "You two don't take anything seriously!" she yells in a huff, then stomps off, only to stop again when she's got just a few meters away. Unfortunately, they're stuck here, causing a scene. The good news is that Hermione is next. Hence, the temper.
"'Mione, you've done nothing but revise for this since you learned that magic existed," Ron says reasonably. "It is absolutely impossible for you to get anything but highest marks on your NEWTs."
"He's right, of course," Harry offers, turning serious. As serious as he can get, that is, under the circumstances. He takes a little peek over to where Draco is sitting against a wall, pretending to doze. He's not dozing, of course, but it fits his image, and image is likely the most important thing in Draco's life. Harry and Draco have been separated because they were headed toward indiscretion after the theory portion of the NEWT this morning. While Harry can understand that discretion is somewhat important during NEWTs, that understanding does not make Draco any less attractive.
"I hate you!" Hermione growls before going to stand right next to the testing door with her back to Ron and Harry.
"What did I do this time?" Ron asks, and Harry can only shrug.
"I've no idea," he admits with a sigh and sits down in the nearest chair, which happens to be next to Ron's, since Hermione had been sitting in it earlier. "I don't think it was you this time, mate," Harry offers. "She's nervous."
"For no reason whatever," Ron points out. "No one else can possibly top her."
"A-hem," coughs Draco from his seat several meters away.
Harry snickers.
"Is Draco implying that he's going to get better marks than Hermione?"
Harry is thinking about the lovely curve of Draco's naked arse, and the way Draco moves when he's pounding Harry into the bed. Harry loves mirrors, but he adores the magic that allows him to conjure mirrors to watch their sex. "Mmm…" Harry says.
"Are you even listening?" Ron says suddenly, catching Harry's attention.
"He is lovely, isn't he?" Harry asks in all seriousness.
"You don't care about this NEWT at all, do you," says Ron with awe.
"I care," Harry disagrees. "It's simply not that important for my future, is it? I needn't work, and I've lost any desire I once harboured of becoming an auror." Blegh. "But I do care. I mean, somewhat. This is the…Charms NEWT, right? I like Charms."
Ron rolls his eyes and shakes his head. "Yes, Harry. Charms." They sat their History of Magic and Care of Magical Creatures NEWTs yesterday, and Harry is certain he got at least half of the answers in the former. Top marks, however, he did not get, while Hermione certainly did. Care of Magical Creatures was actually enjoyable, and the only combined practical/written examination. The History NEWT had no practical portion, which is likely why Harry hates the subject so.
Harry doesn't know how well Draco did. He and Draco do not speak about NEWTs when they fall in together at the end of the day. They fuck. He does know, however, that Draco's goal regarding NEWTs mainly amounts to earning higher marks than Hermione, since they are the only two students sitting as many as they are—that being a completely unreasonable nine. They would be sitting more if they could have fit more subjects into their schedules.
Harry himself is sitting seven (still a completely ridiculous number) mainly because he has nothing better to do whilst all of the others are busy with NEWTs or OWLs or even regular end of term examinations like Ginny and Colin and Luna, (poor Neville). He's not certain whether his celebrity status is supposed to increase the pressure on himself or diminish it, but finds that he is hard-pressed to care about much of anything that is not Draco or their impending wedding, (which is still in the planning phase, because of NEWTs). This morning's Charms theory portion of the exam was less than challenging for Harry, but he's unconcerned either way. He has brought five portfolios with him this afternoon to peruse whilst he awaits his own turn. He pulls out the third and flips idly through it.
"Have you seen Colin's yet?" Ron asks, peeking over Harry's shoulder, as bored as Harry and against further revision on principle. He looks up briefly as Hermione is called into the testing chamber, but does not comment, despite his sudden quickening of breath.
"Haven't got it yet," Harry says and flips another page. The photos are all perfect, in that plasticky way professional photos often are. Everything is staged and beautiful, and the witches and wizards could be anyone. There is nothing in the photos that would convince Harry that the people know each other intimately, or that some of these people are family and love (or even hate) each other. The next is a full-page shot of a bride and groom kissing chastely to seal their vows. They then part and look out of the photo at the viewer, smile and wave excitedly. It's a bit more personality than he's seen before. Perhaps it depends, somewhat, on the people. "I'm not the best judge," Harry admits, "but it seems to me that all of these photographers are technically brilliant, and none of them really speak to me."
"I don't see why you don't just hire Colin. I mean, he knows you, yeah? And you've already seen his photography. He's got loads of talent."
Harry shrugs again and turns another page. It’s the last. "I've no idea whether he can take wedding photos, and Draco would never forgive me if I chose someone who couldn't do this properly. His mother would likely poison me in my sleep."
Ron snorts. "How is Narcissa about this entire fiasco?"
"It's not a fiasco," Harry argues, but half-heartedly. It's an old argument, after all. "She spoke with Draco a bit about it yesterday. Not much, but a bit. It's a good sign."
"Right," Ron agrees, and they sit in companionable silence.
Until Hermione exits looking…shaken. Her mouth is open and she is panting lightly. She is white as a sheet as she walks, carefully, over to Ron and Harry to get her things. Then she leaves. She isn't allowed to stay and possibly give something away about the examination.
"Looks like she did all right," Ron says hopefully.
"Of course," says Harry, though he thinks it looks more like she saw a dementor. On second thought, she likely did, and had to cast a Patronus. Harry smiles at the thought. The classics. Still, mightn’t it be more appropriate to require a Patronus Charm in the DADA NEWT? In which case, Hermione may not have aced this examination, which would be bad for Ron and Harry. Daphne Greengrass has her perfectly expressionless Slytherin face on when she enters the testing chamber. Harry wishes her a silent good luck.
Over the next few hours, Harry and Ron watch most of the seventh-years entering and leaving the chambers. Hopkins, Jones, Li… Poor Longbottom quaking when he walks in and fainting as soon as he makes it out. Ernie tries very hard to look like he is confident when he goes in, but seems excessively relieved when he exits. Harry is guessing he had not expected to do well at all, though he pretended to confidence. Macmillan is an intelligent bloke, of course, but not the most talented.
Draco is next, and he is very careful not to look at Harry before he enters the testing chamber, back straight, chin level, head held high. A god among men, he is. Harry is nearly drooling when the door closes behind Draco, and for once, Ron doesn't comment. He only shakes his head and pulls out a portfolio they've already perused but found not atrocious. "I think this should be one of the top choices," he says.
Harry thinks this is the longest ten minutes of his life. He hears not a word anyone says, but he is memorising the knot patterns on the wooden door to the testing chamber. He is thinking of that special colour Draco's eyes turn when he is smiling indulgently in the firelight. Nearly hematite. It reminds him of Lucius, but the pain is diminishing. He can remember the elder Malfoy's beauty, now, and not drown in guilt.
And then the door opens, and Draco swaggers out. He tosses a look at Harry and a smirk, then exits dramatically, a billow of robes drawing everyone's attention to the shining beacon of Draco's white skin and hair above the mostly black uniform. Although Harry knows that Draco would swagger no matter how he'd fared, Harry is confident that this swagger was genuine. Of course, Harry never had any doubt that Draco would ace this particular NEWT.
Morag McDougal is next, but Harry so does not care. Another long line of students traipsing through his periphery. Moon, Nott, that Parkinson cow, the Patil twins…
"Oi! Your go, Harry!" Ron is whispering loudly. Then more discreetly, "Your eyes, Harry!"
Harry groans, then assures that his eyes are well and truly green (with white sclera) before pushing open the door to the testing chamber. It would never do to have the tester frightened—or biased—by his history of darkness.
"Mr Potter," says a withered old woman Harry immediately recognizes from his OWLs year.
"Madam Marchbanks." Harry respectfully inclines his head slightly. "It is good to see you again, and well."
"I should say the same, Mr Potter," she replies, equally respectful, "as your survival was far more in question than my own, despite my advanced age. But we haven't time for chit-chat, dear boy. We've much to go through and only ten minutes to do it in. Are you ready to begin?"
"Yes, Madam," Harry says, since he prefers doing magic to standing about chatting.
"All right, wand out, then," she says, and Harry blushes, realising he'd been ready to begin the NEWT without it. He pulls it out and stands ready. "Before you tire then, conjure an object of your choice. Extra points for size and/or complexity, of course."
Conjuring is one of the most difficult charms taught in the seventh-year curriculum, and is actually taught in both Charms and Transfigurations, though it is more properly placed in the latter. It involves changing raw power into something else, after all. Harry finds it a fascinating art, but not as useful as transfiguration from a base object, as conjured items tend to have a very short life or take a great deal of power to conjure in the first place. So Harry gathers himself, then disciplines his mind, before conjuring an elephant that will last all of one minute, if he has timed it correctly. It is both large and complex, especially since it is actually living and breathing, if not internally accurate.
He opens his eyes and looks on his creation, steps back a bit as it trumpets at him, not overly pleased, it seems, to have been conjured into such a small, cold, stone classroom.
Madam Marchbanks, too, has taken a step back. A few, really, bringing her all the way to the far wall. She is gaping at the elephant. It's a beautiful Asian specimen, actually, with great stretches of freckled pink skin. A royal elephant, if ever there was one, its head perfectly domed and fuzzy, its ears dainty. She is obviously a female, as she has no tusks, but is just as obviously full-grown.
And then she disappears again. "I hope that was long enough to allow you to mark me, Madam, or I can conjure her again." He’d rather not, of course…it’s quite tiring.
Madam Marchbanks is staring at where the elephant had stood, but quickly moves her eyes to Harry. "That was quite long enough, thank you," she says, the wrinkles that make up her skin masking any sort of facial expression, and her unfathomable age assuring 'eau de dust' masks any scent she might otherwise have given off. Madam Marchbanks is far too old for hormones like adrenaline. When she is finished marking, she moves back toward Harry again and says, "Elemental work. Choose an element with which to show your mastery of basic state manipulation."
This is likely the magic Harry uses most on a daily basis. He chooses air, because it is the most flexible without moving into transfiguration, and because it's an easy way to 'cheat'. Air is a mixture, containing particles of earth (though tiny) and water as well as a vast array of things we consider gasses, like oxygen and nitrogen. So Harry goes through a series of exercises he has practised countless times over the last terms, sphering in a large portion of the chamber's air, manipulating the sphere's contents, cooling and condensing, until he has separated the water and earth and has them hovering in different strata. He then discards the water and earth, (the latter dropping to form a pile on the floor, the former boiled off with a thought), and removes heat from the remaining gasses until the nitrogen and oxygen liquefy and rain into the bottom of the sphere whilst the carbon dioxide forms crystals of dry ice. Finally, he dissolves the sphere and watches as everything boils off or sublimates into the air, creating an odourless smoke that quickly dissipates but looks very dramatic all the same. When he is done, he looks up at Madam Marchbanks.
She sits calmly in a chair, marking on her scroll. She does not even look up when she says, "You may as well put that wand away if you're not going to use it, Mr Potter."
So Harry puts his wand away again and awaits the next task. The last one took him nearly five minutes, so he is more than half-way through his testing time. He hopes he hasn't much left to do.
"Wards, Mr Potter," she says and points to the door.
Harry throws up the same series he has used on his own chambers this year in under a minute. She then points to a small box and says, "Open it, please, Mr Potter," which Harry then proceeds to do. It takes him nearly two minutes, however, and he is worried that he is not working quickly enough. He wonders if Draco could have got through the wards faster with a wand than Harry can do without, but he doesn't think so. Draco is good with wards, but Harry is much better, and he doesn't think his not using a wand has handicapped him at all.
When he looks up from the box, Madam Marchbanks is standing again with her wand in hand. The wards he placed on the door have been broken. Harry had felt it happening, since they include an alert to him, triggered when they broke. Now, she has taken up a duelling stance, and Harry is automatically on guard. He has drilled far too much to not expect any witch or wizard with a wand to attack him, though usually only for training purposes.
Of course, training has included everything from immolation to evisceration, so Harry has taken his training seriously, and in the first thirty seconds, he has already blocked several nearly harmless jinxes like Jellylegs and Horntongue as well as some slightly less innocuous, including the Tarantella curse, which causes someone to dance uncontrollably. The curse can cause death, but it's a very slow death and easily avoided if the curse is dealt with. Harry, however, simply deflects it, as he has the others he has not ducked.
"Mr Potter, we expect offensive manoeuvres as well as defensive," says Madam Marchbanks after a minute or so, showing absolutely no evidence of strain, like Harry, despite being…well, likely ten times Harry's age.
"Yes, Madam," Harry says obediently, then begins interspersing attacks with his defence. He is extremely impressed with himself when he lands a Stupefy, but more than slightly intimidated when it lasts for a mere three seconds. He is so shocked, in fact, that he gets hit with an Uncontrollable Laughter jinx, which would have been disastrous to someone who requires words to cast spells. Harry, however, does not, and uses the split-second lull to sweep Madam Marchbanks up on a glider, then encase her in a warding sphere, to buy himself time. He manages to break the jinx only seconds before she breaks the wards and manipulates the glider herself to take her back to the floor.
"Well done, Mr Potter," she says. "It has been most interesting duelling with you. You have obviously trained a great deal, and have shown your mastery of both charms usage and the fundamental principles that underlie them and allow you to create new charms of your own…. But your heritage is showing, Mr Potter," she says sadly, a small smile shaping the great furrows of her skin. "It saddens me that the burden of Voldemort has left you so marked, so young."
Harry blinks, then realises what she must be talking about. With an irritated wave of his left hand, he conjures a mirror to hover beside himself and turns to look—finds that his eyes have bled to black again, and curses his own weakness. He had forgotten completely to mind that blasted spell. He now puts it back in place with a very angry thought, and wishes his cheeks weren't flaming with embarrassment. "Shall I send in the next student, Madam?" Harry asks and does not meet her eyes. He doesn't want to see disgust there or, even worse, pity. It feels like the whole world wants to pity him, sometimes, and though it means people let him get away with almost anything, it does grow wearisome.
"You may send in the next student, Mr Potter," she says, "but I hope that you have decided to leave the Dark Arts behind. They are very powerful, and can be useful, which is why they are still utilised, despite the heavy price. But that price must always be paid, Mr Potter. Your eyes are but a warning, and one you are lucky to’ve got. Most never learn the peril their souls are in before they are already lost. Your fey ancestors have blessed you with this gift."
"I have left them behind, I assure you, Madam Marchbanks," Harry answers as soon as she pauses long enough. "Only the Lycanthropy remains," and he escapes the chamber as quickly as possible, only later realising how terrified he must have looked to those still waiting for their own practical. He manages to wish Ron luck before gathering all of the portfolios with a wave and trailing them behind himself as he glides back to his rooms, where Draco is waiting.
"Ah, my own little puppy," says Draco with a lascivious twinkle. "I thought you'd never arrive." And then he notices Harry's pallor and the slipping colour charm on Harry's eyes and says, "You lost control of it, didn't you." He doesn't even ask before banishing the portfolios to a large box of others they've been sent. "It's not the end of the world, you know. You needn't work at all, and after we gain an heir, at least one of us should likely remain home with him—"
"She's not going to fail me for…showing my heritage, as she put it. And for dealing with Voldemort. She simply sent me off with a warning, and I assured her that dark magic is in my past, not my future."
"Well, not entirely, certainly," Draco says, always the practical one, except when it comes to things like haute couture clothing.
"There will always be the Lycanthropy," Harry agrees.
"Which reminds me," and so quickly are they off to other—hopefully less upsetting—topics. "I was reading more on the Homorphous Charm."
The name dredges up memories…of Gilderoy Lockhart, mostly. "That exists?" Harry asks, somewhat surprised. He hadn't really thought about it in quite a while, since it seemed likely to be complete bollocks, or Dumbledore would have used it on Lupin.
"Well, yes and no," Draco says with a shrug. "It does exist, and when cast, forces a werewolf to revert to its human form. It is equally as traumatic as the natural way of changing you avoid when at all possible, and does not seem to work as a prophylactic. Nor does it affect the werewolf's mental state."
Well, after all of that, the spell seems more an interesting bit of trivia than anything else. "All right…?" Harry says, not sure where Draco is going with this.
"I thought it might be possible to find a way to alter it—to make it prophylactic," he says with a roll of the eyes. "Since your change is rather a bar to you carrying a child."
"Ah," Harry says, "I'll let you work on that, then," and goes to the loo, where he undresses then showers, managing to avoid thinking at all, especially about Lycanthropy and Homorphous Charms and getting pregnant. Afterward, he dries himself with a thought, then combs his still-wet hair. He banishes his clothes to the hamper, then joins Draco in the main room again.
"You being the genius of the wizarding world now and all," Draco says with deceptive calm, "you might wish to work on this problem as well."
"Or I might not," Harry disagrees, "since Dumbledore would have done this already if it were possible. He would have helped Remus, not left him to suffer for decades in infamy, relegated to the outcaste slums of wizarding society. I cannot believe that Dumbledore would be so cruel."
Draco sighs deeply and places the back of his hand against his forehead, as if he's getting a headache. "Perhaps the Headmaster simply hasn't thought of it," he says reasonably. "He's very old, Harry. Perhaps his creativity has diminished over the decades. I mean, the wizard likely hasn't learnt a new spell in nearly a century."
"Well, perhaps we should ask him, then." Harry no longer wishes to discuss this. "But not now." Not ever, he adds mentally.
"All right, all right," Draco says, hands up, shoulders ever-so-slightly slumped.
Harry is shocked. A Malfoy never backs down. This must be a first in the history of the family. Well…except, Malfoys usually did back down from Voldemort. "I need to rest, regardless," Harry says, because in truth, he's exhausted and it makes holding the colour charm on his eyes that much more difficult. Which reminds him, "She said my 'fey' ancestors caused my eyes to change," Harry says, and his confusion shines through.
"I'm certain she meant that you've some type of faerie in your ancestry, like I've veela in mine, but more than that," he shrugs. "It'd be difficult to guess what type of faerie, even. Perhaps when we go to ask the Headmaster."
Harry groans but does not comment. He should never have suggested it. For now, he gets ready for bed, as tomorrow will be another very long day.
(chapter 5 continues…)
NEWTs (continued) by colibri
Chapter 5: NEWTs (continued)
The Potions theory NEWT is to run from eight until ten o'clock Tuesday morning, followed by the practical, from ten until 1 in the afternoon. The practical Transfiguration and Divination NEWTs are scheduled to begin at 1 o'clock, but those students sitting the Potions exam won't begin until 2 o’clock at the earliest.
Harry is writing feverishly on his Potions theory exam with half a brain concentrating on the material, the other half escaping the cramping of his hand by being thoroughly impressed by the scheduling of the afternoon. He wonders whether anyone in this room is not sitting the Transfiguration examination. He finds it highly unlikely, but can't really know, since he’s not been in the lectures this term. Perhaps students like Ron will have completed both the Transfiguration and Divination NEWTs by the time Harry is finished eating lunch.
He writes and writes, until he has nothing more to say, and then reads over his work to have something to do that won't get him into trouble. He knows this material intimately, and the one or two potions he's not overly confident about in every detail, he can mostly piece together from his knowledge of herbs and other potions ingredients, paired with his general knowledge of the potions' effects. It is unlikely he has got a perfect score, but it is highly likely that he's got top marks.
He finally hands in his scroll, mere minutes before the end of time. It gives him exactly long enough to run to the loo before returning for the practical. The students are left waiting outside the room until the cauldrons and supplies are all set up, which gives Draco time to seek Harry out. "What were you doing in there?" Draco whispers, once he's dragged Harry (but nicely) to a secluded corner of the corridor.
"When do you mean?" Had Harry done something forbidden?
"I know you finished that exam hours ago, and yet you sat in there until time was nearly finished."
"I was rereading my answers," Harry says with a shrug, not certain why Draco was even noticing.
"Oh…all right," he says, then sighs. Smiles a little. "Your eyes."
Harry groans, but he reasserts the charm. "I'm beginning to get a complex about this," he says.
"You don't even need to carry a wand, Harry. Don't get a complex about this small thing. It's just completely unnatural for you to mask it, is all."
"Not sure why it's so unnatural," Harry mutters.
Draco's smile goes a bit wider. "Perhaps you prefer the look," he says, then kisses Harry just once, and almost chastely, before they are called into the room again.
Harry and Draco end up as far from each other as they could get. This suits both of them, especially Harry, since the smells are strong enough to mask even the extremely familiar scent of his lover from across the room. Still, Potions is distracting enough that he's been able to tune out everything in the past.
The practical exam, it turns out, involves a different potion for everyone—or, at least, several different potions scattered throughout the students, to keep students from cheating. If you don't recognise a potion, you can't be certain whether you should be copying what someone else is doing. Harry recognises several different potions merely from what ingredients students have fetched, but Harry also does not need to cheat. His little set of instructions asks that he brew both a Pepperup Potion and a Mandrake Restorative Draught. All in three hours. This means he will have to use two cauldrons and brew them simultaneously, but he is not the only one who sees this necessity. Several other students are fetching a second cauldron as well, including Hermione.
After Harry gets started, however, there is no more thought of the other students nor…well, anything but the potions. He relaxes into the rhythm of chopping, dicing, skinning, slicing, pounding, stirring, counting, incanting; and when he has completed his potions, he bottles and stoppers them, and casts a Moror Tempus on them before bringing them up to the proctor—in this case, an older gentleman who seems as reserved as Snape, though less bitter. He is of medium height, though very thin, and dark-skinned with kinky hair that has gone almost completely white. He looks very distinguished, Harry thinks, and quite handsome for a ninety-year-old wizard.
The proctor tries not to look Harry in the eye when Harry comes up, but simply marks the bottles with Harry's name and the date, then cocks his head in confusion. He looks up at Harry for a moment, but then looks hastily away again, and places the bottles in a padded case and gestures toward the door. The students are not to clean their own places. The proctor will check to make certain everything seems legitimately brewed during the testing time, and sixth-year students will tidy the mess. Having students moving about, clattering cauldrons and muttering cleaning spells, perhaps accidentally causing explosions and the like during the exam, is simply a bit too much for a NEWT sitting. A single Evanesco is one thing, and is actually being used by some of the students who had potions that could be made one after another, but anything more than that….
Harry goes immediately to lunch at the Great Hall, to eat before the Transfiguration exam. It is nearly 1 o'clock already and Ron is lingering, looking forlorn, until he spots Harry. He perks immediately and gestures wildly for Harry to join him, which Harry does. "Oi, Harry. Your eyes." His own are wide as they dart from side to side.
"Bollocks," Harry mutters before reasserting the charm. No wonder the proctor had avoided looking at them.
"…How'd it go, then?" Ron asks, before pouring a glass of pumpkin juice for his friend. It matches Ron’s hair almost perfectly.
"Well, I suppose. Better than the theoretical."
"What about Hermione?" So very hopeful.
"I've no idea, but I can only assume she got top marks. It's not Snape who's marking these, after all. More than that, and you'll have to ask her, mate. Sorry."
"No worries," Ron says on a sigh. "She's been impossible lately, Harry. Just impossible."
"Yeah, well, this means a lot to her. Everything, really." He shrugs. "That should be a surprise to neither of us. What about Divination for you this afternoon?"
"I'm at 1:30," Ron says. "We get thirty minutes per."
"When do you sit Transfiguration, then?" Harry asks, finally taking the plate of vegetable lasagne and cutting a square of it for himself. He starts in on it before even tasting his salad. It's rare for the house elves to prepare Italian food, for some reason, but it's delicious.
"Two," says Ron and polishes off his own glass of pumpkin juice. "I'll be finished early today for a change, then on me way to Hogsmeade while you lot are still agonising over your coming terror."
"Hogsmeade, eh?" Harry says. He's not going to remind Ron that he's not stressing over this at all. "Plans, then?"
"Fred an' George are taking me out. I'm meeting them at Hogsmeade, but I dunno where we're going from there."
"Ace," Harry agrees.
Hermione races in just then followed by Draco, who is as calm as one would expect of a Malfoy. He follows Hermione over to where Ron and Harry are already seated, though, and sits down next to Harry, then gives Harry a serious snog before letting him go again. "Hello, Potter," he says with a smirk.
"Malfoy," Harry returns. "A bit late leaving that one."
"The potion required the full three hours," he says with a shrug.
Harry nods once, then looks to Hermione. "All right, 'Mione?"
She looks ready to cry. "I barely completed it, Harry!" she whispers, because she is short of breath. She seems panicked.
"But you did complete it," Harry confirms.
"Yes! But—"
"Doesn't matter how close it was, luv," Ron says with concern. "You completed the potion, you handed it in. They're not marking how close to not finishing you came."
"Exactly," Harry agrees, lifting his leg to twine it with Draco's, over the thigh and behind the calf. He takes another bite of his lasagne. "Just like they won't be marking me on how well I maintained my eye-colour charm," he mutters, "or Merlin knows I'd fail it completely."
"Mm," says Draco, and once Harry has finished his glass of pumpkin juice, Draco pulls him into another snog, then murmurs, "Have to go," into Harry's ear.
"Why?" Harry asks.
"I have to go," says Ron apologetically, to his girlfriend and to Harry. "Divination. Good luck with Transfiguration this afternoon."
"Why, thanks, Weasley. And good luck to you, as well," says Draco, and even Harry is hard-pressed to tell whether Draco is serious or sarcastic.
"I think I'll just take that at face value," Ron mutters, then nods warily at Draco before kissing Hermione chastely on the forehead and racing off.
As soon as he is gone, though, Hermione simply wilts. Within the minute, she is weeping, silently, into her hands, and Harry rushes round the table, to sit down beside her. He looks up at Draco across the table with helpless eyes.
Draco gives him a look that says, 'don't ask me, I'm a bloke!' before fleeing back to Slytherin.
"Er," says Harry, "'Mione…don't cry…."
"'M not," says Hermione, completely unreasonable.
It takes Harry every bit of courage he has to reach out to her and wrap an arm about her shoulders. He takes his other hand and places it on her near shoulder. "You know that you're an exemplary student," he says. "No one can touch you in sheer academic prowess."
"Draco can."
"Draco can't really. Not in everything, certainly."
"He's better than me in Arithmancy," she laments, though quietly.
"You're better in History," Harry points out. "And you're about equal in the other required subjects—Charms, Transfigurations, Potions. He gets better marks with Snape because he's Slytherin, but you know that already."
"'Mione! Dear, what is the matter?!" comes Ginny's voice, full of worry and… support, or something…that thing women can do that most blokes are, for some reason, useless at. She sits down in the place Ron vacated, on the other side of Hermione from Harry. Harry is forced to draw away, to allow her to pull Hermione into an embrace, but he feels far more relieved than slighted and inches away unobtrusively, until Ginny speaks again. "Tell us what's wrong, then?" so soft and coaxing.
"It's nothing," Hermione insists weakly, her voice watery from weeping. "I just…that Potions NEWT," but at least she doesn't feel the need to break into a new bout of sobbing as a result of mentioning it. Harry had feared that she would.
"Loads of stress, 'Mione, and now you've let it all out," says Ginny confidently. "Can only improve your performance this afternoon. What’s next? Transfigurations, yeah?"
Hermione nods and uses her napkin to blot at her eyes and cheeks daintily. Harry had never really thought of her as being particularly dainty before. Feminine, certainly, but dainty? Harry looks across the Hall to where Malfoy is now holding court, keeping his Slytherin comrades in line through sheer arrogance and beauty. Harry seriously considers removing Draco's hair or his clothing, to turn that arrogance down a tad. The hair thing might work, but stripping Draco naked would likely only lead to an even larger fan base for the royal Malfoy. Harry does nothing. Except stare.
Draco looks up just then and notices Harry watching from between two heads Harry doesn't bother trying to recognise from this distance. Draco smirks, then winks, then frowns slightly and points to his temple discreetly, and even more discreetly, to his right eye.
"Oh bloody fuck," Harry mutters and reasserts his charm. This is never going to work. It seems to be getting more difficult for him to maintain the charm instead of less.
(chapter 5 continues...)
NEWTs (continued) by colibri
Chapter 5: NEWTs (continued)
By the time they go to await their Transfigurations NEWT, Hermione has completely recovered from her bout with self-doubt, and Ron is kissing her good-bye on his way to meet the twins. Harry commandeers a corner in which to sit quietly perusing the portfolios, once again. This time Draco sits with him, as they've managed at least the minimum level of decorum so far, and pages through a muggle fashion magazine called Vogue Hommes that is thick and heavy and very glossy, and looks to have cost something like thirty quid, if a magazine can cost that much. It's full of men who are not nearly as pretty as Draco, wearing clothing that looks more strange than good. When Harry comments on this, Draco says, "Well, thank you, Potter, but I already knew that you've been blinded by my beauty," and after another snog, (though a quick one whilst no one is watching), he explains, patiently, "It's all about colour, cut, and texture. The actual clothes aren't that important."
"Oh," says Harry, not understanding a word, and goes back to the portfolios for what seems like five minutes but must be much more, since his arse is getting sore when Draco interrupts him.
"So, any candidates, yet?" Draco asks, picking an album at random, opening it, then thumbing noncommittally through it. He looks at a few of the photos sceptically.
"Not really, no," Harry admits. "Any of them could do it, but none of them seems very special."
"Sometimes you don't want special, Harry. Sometimes, you simply want glamour." He crinkles his nose in distaste, though, and picks up another. He seems equally pleased with this one. "A bit flat," he says.
"That's exactly what I thought," Harry agrees, then sighs and places the album he is holding onto the stack he has brought. "But more come in every day, right? I'll keep looking. Have you decided about clothes yet?"
"No," and Draco seems almost embarrassed to admit it. "I think we should both wear formal robes," he says, but sounds far less self-assured than is his usual wont.
"As opposed to me wearing a frock?" Harry asks, perfectly serious.
"Yeah, I don't think you should wear a gown," Draco says. "Especially now that you've cut your hair."
"I can grow it back," Harry says with a shrug.
"I like you as a man," Draco says, effectively discarding that idea. "Which is not to say that I don't find the long hair attractive, because I obviously did."
"Right," Harry agrees. Is Draco nervous? He sounds nothing like his usual self. "A venue?"
"I've had three thoughts on that," Draco says, sounding far more solid now. "The Manor, after a cleansing ritual," Harry hadn't thought of that, but it's a good idea, actually, "which has quite a number of positive aspects." Harry agrees silently, and nods.
"Here, at Hogwarts—in the Great Hall. Another option which allows for a large number of guests but is also a safer space. We wouldn't need to do much to ward, while the Manor's wards would have to be retooled along with the cleansing." Harry nods again.
"The third thought I had, was…well, perhaps it was a bit inappropriate."
"Inappropriate?" Harry asks, not certain what Draco could possibly mean. Why would he bother mentioning it, if it were inappropriate?
"Well, I thought that perhaps we could find a way to connect to your family if you wished—perhaps have the wedding in Godric's Hollow."
And if that can't shock Harry into silence, nothing can. Several long, long moments pass while he gathers himself enough to say, "Sorry?" though he's certainly heard what Draco said.
"I was brainstorming options," Draco says rather flatly, "and thought Godric's Hollow was a valid option. There are many negative memories there, as there would be at the Manor, but there are also positive ones, and it may be easier to connect with your parents there."
"Righ'…" Harry says, but he's thinking something more along the lines of, Who is this beautiful, thoughtful creature, and what has he done with Draco Malfoy?
"It's not really even the best option, though," Draco says, and there's just the slightest hint of a blush in his cheeks at his humiliation for having brought it up—such an obvious concession to Harry. Poor Draco, thinks he's offended Harry, now.
"Perhaps not," Harry says quickly, "but it is a valid option, as you said. And really, there are fewer negative memories there than there are at the Manor. I don't really remember my parents at all, Draco. Even the flashes are…weak. And now that I've avenged their deaths…well, the horror of their murder is already beginning to temper with time."
Draco looks at Harry consideringly, then seems to make some sort of decision, before pulling Harry into a kiss. This, of course, leads to another. And then another. Until…well, they're all-out snogging, and Harry is ignoring the tittering of students who are commenting that they're at it again and can't keep their hands off each other for more than five minutes at a time. He ignores them so well, in fact, that it takes several insistent callings of his name before he realises that it's actually his go at sitting the exam.
He pulls away with a gasp, wanting nothing more than to stay here, in Draco's grasp, for eternity. "I'm up," he says apologetically, and swoons again when Draco smirks and leans back languidly against his hands. Harry can scent Draco's arousal easily, even if he can't see it through the robes. "See you at supper, then?"
Draco nods, and Harry can feel his eyes even as Harry runs to the door and enters the examination chambers. "Mr Potter—so kind of you to decide to sit this NEWT today," says Professor Tofty, looking not a day younger, (and certainly no more hirsute), than the last time Harry had seen him, during his OWLs. "So, if you wish, you may end the charm on your eyes and avoid dividing your concentration. I can assure you that it will have no bearing on your marks."
Harry blinks, unsure exactly what to think. I am perfectly capable of performing any piddling transfigurations required by this NEWT without worrying about my eye-colour charm, Harry seethes, but he keeps his mouth shut. He is discomfited that Professor Marchbanks has apparently told everyone about his very private difficulties.
In the end, he lets the charm slip because he looks more fearsome that way, and perhaps also because he would be even more embarrassed should the charm slip whilst he is concentrating on the exam. That would only prove Professor Tofty correct. "I'm ready," Harry says, then, and stares expressionlessly at the professor with his ebon eyes. He can scent the increased adrenaline and is pleased.
"First, if you'll transfigure this pillbox into a pill-bug, please, Mr Potter," says the professor.
Harry tries not to roll his eyes. One small object into an even smaller one. And yes, it does require assimilating energy, but it's such a minute amount, it hardly matters to someone who has actually practised. Harry waves at the box and pushes with his will, and the box becomes a perfect little pill-bug, walking about until Harry shoves at it ever-so-gently with his finger and it rolls up into a little ball.
"Excellent, Mr Potter. And back again?"
Harry doesn't even use a hand gesture this time. One moment the bug is there, the next, the box has returned.
"Next, conjuring," says Professor Tofty. "The item of your choice, but not something commonly present here at Hogwarts." So that he can't simply Apparate something here using something like house elf magic, he supposes. As if that's easier than conjuring. He wouldn't even know where to begin, to get round Hogwarts's wards against Apparition.
Harry thinks for a moment, but not too long. He doesn't wish to waste time and end up rushed as he had in the Charms NEWT. He gets a flash of insight, then pictures the item in full detail, down to the lustre of the chrome and lacquer. And then he pushes magic from himself, and pulls from the magic around him, and manifests…
"A bicycle," says Professor Tofty with surprise.
"I'm rather certain there are no bicycles on the Hogwarts grounds," Harry justifies. He doesn't think it was so simple as to be disappointing to the professor. A working bicycle is actually difficult to conjure. Not as difficult as a motorbike, but Harry doesn't think he could conjure a motorbike without a great deal of practise.
"I'm quite certain you're right, Mr Potter," Tofty agrees and takes a closer look at the bicycle. He seems fascinated, actually, now that Harry takes a closer look. He holds the thing as if he's about to ride it, though he'd have some difficulty, since the chamber is filled with writing tables.
So with the wave of a hand, Harry performs a mass Evanesco on all of the student tables and chairs, leaving only the professor's table at the head of the class and a large, open space. "Care to try it out?" he offers.
Tofty looks up from the bicycle to see that Harry has cleared the chamber. "Well, that fulfils the next objective of the examination," he mutters, but he does hitch up his robes and get onto that bicycle. After attempting to ride for a minute or so, he gives up but is in grand spirits. "Fabulous contraptions, these," he says to Harry, as if Harry is equally enamoured.
Harry finds it distinctly pleasant, seeing the professor behave in this fashion. Perhaps it is because it reminds him of Arthur Weasley. "Indeed," Harry agrees aloud with a small smile. "What is the next objective?" he reminds gently.
"Ah, yes," Tofty says and turns to point his wand at a door behind him. A swish and flick, and the door opens. It is a young man Harry has never seen before standing there. Quite a looker, actually. "If you'll please transfigure this man into the animal of your choice."
Harry doesn't even think. The man is a wolf, now, and Harry is itching to transform himself as well. He doesn't even think about Draco, which is rather expected, as he's still a bloke. Only then he does, and he blushes, and then transfigures the man into a goat instead, which is not at all sexual but is a bit smelly. So then he restores the man and does a switching spell instead, so that now the man looks like Tofty, and Tofty is hot instead.
"Show-off," says the man who looks like Tofty.
Harry raises an eyebrow, and the man notices Harry's eyes for the first time, shrinking away just a bit. Harry undoes the switching spell, then transfigures the man's mouth right away, leaving him to breathe, wide-eyed and panic-stricken, through his nose. Harry reverses that within five seconds, however. "I wasn't showing off," Harry says quietly. "I actually enjoy doing magic. I was simply enjoying myself."
"Even more impressive, Mr Potter," says Tofty, who is a little bit shaken by this point, though nowhere near as shaken as the other nameless man. "But I'm afraid I'll have to deduct a point for that most un-gentlemanly display of vengeance."
Harry sighs silently, but says nothing. He notes that the other man grows more nervous however, and steals glances toward Harry. "Are there any further objectives to complete, Professor?" Harry asks.
"No, Mr Potter. You have performed all of the objectives and more, you may go. And if you'll send in Miss Granger, please?"
Harry goes and sends in Miss Granger.
* * *
"The bastard penalised me—for that git's comment!" Harry is ranting.
Draco, however, is laughing—positively delighted, he is, and it's making Harry even angrier. "It's not fair, is it," Draco manages to force out between giggles.
"You're bloody right it's not fair!"
"But perhaps it is, Potter. Perhaps you should learn better control, and not terrify the esteemed testers from the Wizarding Education Authority, hmm?"
Harry has already deflated. Draco is right, of course. Harry is wrong. But he's still angry. "And I fulfilled every objective flawlessly," he adds, now in a sulk.
"Of course, my little puppy," Draco teases, feigning commiseration and concern with a real embrace and peck on the cheek. "Shall I perform some curse on them in retaliation? An Unforgivable, perhaps?"
"Fuuuuck!" Harry whinges. "Why couldn't I just have ignored him?"
"Well, he was a bit of cake, then, wasn't he?"
"Oh was he, now?" Harry is not going to fall into any trap in this area.
"Certainly not up to my standards," Draco says with that degree of arrogance that seems almost to define his personality. "Not even as pretty as you," he adds, as if Harry is barely better than that bint Parkinson. "But not bad, for a regular bloke, and during a NEWT."
"I see," says Harry. "And did you happen to catch any information about him? His name?"
"Of course not," says Draco, too confused even for amusement. "He's nobody. There's nothing about him worth knowing."
"Of course," Harry says with a smirk. "I forgot. Well, thank you, at least, for taking my mind off that strop I was nursing."
"My pleasure, I assure you," says Draco, though it was entirely selfishly done on his part. That does not bother Harry at all. "I thought we might prepare for tomorrow by turning the room into a den of iniquity or, perhaps, a steamy boudoir, so that we might spend the entirety of tomorrow in a clinch and feel like we're on holiday."
"Sounds fab," Harry agrees. They've no NEWTs tomorrow after all, that being Thursday. A nice little day off. Friday, however, Draco will sit Arithmancy, while on Monday, they will both sit Defence, and Harry will be taking his wolf form beginning that evening. Wednesday will be their final NEWT in Herbology. So, in only a week, they'll be finished, and all Harry has to do is make certain he remains lucid during those final three days.
(end chapter 5)
Self Defence by colibri
Chapter 6: Self Defence
There are many things in this world that bear a pleasant scent. Freshly cut grass, for example. Or…chocolate ice cream. Freshly baked scones with clotted cream. Gardenias, and Night-blooming Jasmine.
Some scents are less…well…one would not necessarily say they are pleasant. A bustling fish market at 5 p.m. A sun-drenched beach after a storm, when the seaweed has washed ashore and has been baking for quite some time. The Potions classroom in the middle of brewing a Mandrake Restorative Draught.
In between there is an entire kaleidoscope of scents, full of nuance and variability. Just now, Harry is wallowing in one of his favourites, and the fact that Draco is not entirely pleased about it does not even filter into Harry's awareness. In fact, when he began his exploration of this particular favourite, Draco was asleep. Harry couldn’t really care less whether Draco remains asleep.
Of course, Draco does not. "Harry, you absolutely must remove your face from my underarm," says a voice that is sleep-rough and very sexy, but not nearly as sexy as the scent in which Harry is currently wallowing. That is why Harry pays no attention whatever to what Draco is saying. That and, of course, that Harry doesn't really understand what Draco is saying. "Harry, luv? Do you hear me?" Harry finds the taste just as fascinating as the scent, full of bitter and salt, a hint of sweet, and metal. Mustn't forget the metal.
"Oh bloody bugger!" and the lovely scent is removed.
Harry is pulled from his single-minded pursuit of (somewhat dubious) pleasure to harsh reality. He blinks at Draco and wonders what the look of utter disgust is about.
"Harry, are you all there?" says Draco with true concern.
When Harry thinks very hard, he understands what Draco is saying. But…well, it takes some work to make it actually make sense. "Sorry?" says Harry, because he didn't really do that work.
"Well, you still speak English, at least," Draco mutters, then becomes stern. "Harry, you can't go around licking my underarm. It's not civilised."
"Why not?"
"Because, it's just not."
"Tastes good, lovely scent," says Harry and leans forward because really, he can smell it from here, of course. He'd simply rather be there.
"You've your Defence NEWT today, Harry. You simply must pull it together," says Draco with great reason.
Harry is hearing many buzzing words, but they don't make a whole lot of sense, and so they can't possibly be very important. He dives for other places which aren't equally fragrant but have other things to recommend them. He is quick but careful, and Draco, while completely capable of saying no to a bit of oral pleasure, is not generally known to do so. Today does not prove the exception, and oral pleasure leads to many, many other pleasures, including a post-coital shower punctuated by Harry bending in half and Draco drilling him again, just to be certain that Harry is all sexed out.
* * *
"Bloody fuck," whispers Ron harshly, eyes darting nervously as Draco forces Harry down in the seat beside Ron. Harry's hair is obscuring his face, but it is quite obvious to Ron that his eyes are coal black throughout and that Harry is not really functioning as he should today.
"Indeed," mutters Draco and sits on Harry's other side. Harry is still highly pliant from his multiple orgasms. He is now leaning against Draco's shoulder with his eyes shut. Thank Merlin. "He is completely out of touch today,"
"Has he been taking his potion?" Ron asks, leaning forward so that he can see Draco's profile, which seems more worried than usual if you know how to read the bloke. Anyone else would say Draco is as unruffled as ever.
"Of course," Draco growls. Well, almost.
"Fuck-fuck-fuck!" Ron whispers again. "'Mione will come unhinged if she sees Harry like this!"
"I'm not really very concerned about Miss Granger's reaction to Harry's predicament," Draco bites off. "I'm far more concerned with Harry's NEWT."
Ron groans, and then things get worse.
"Good morning, gentlemen!" says Hermione, who seems quite cheerful this morning, despite carrying not a single book with her. She has been revising in her rooms this morning because she has promised Ron not to bring her texts with her to breakfast today. "Draco, Harry…Ron," the last with a smile, and she leans over the table to give him a brief peck before sitting across from him. Then blinking. Then drawing her brows together. "Oh. No," she says.
"Please don't worry, 'Mione," says Ron.
"Harry?" Hermione says, ignoring Ron for the moment. "Harry, are you all right?"
"He's a bit worn out," Draco says with a lascivious twinkle and a smirk.
It was worth a try. "Harry Potter," says Hermione with authority, and moves over a seat to settle directly before Harry. She stands a bit to put a hand on his cheek—the one that's not leaning against Draco's shoulder.
Black eyes open languidly to focus on hers, and a little, contented smile forms on the beautiful, rose-bud lips.
Hermione pulls her hand away quickly, discomfited, but Draco's goes up to replace it gently. He looks so tender, there, the way he supports Harry. She berates herself for her discomfiture. "The change," she says.
"He's not been this compromised since the first time we saw, I think," Draco murmurs quietly, as if to avoid spooking Harry.
Hermione doesn't even speak again, she simply stands and walks directly to the Head Table, to the Headmaster and Deputy Headmistress specifically, and has a very quiet, very tense conversation with them that Draco absolutely does not watch.
Ron, of course, is riveted. "Whatever she's asking them, it's not going well," says Ron.
"If I wished play-by-play reporting of the proceedings, I would be eavesdropping, Weasley," Draco growls again, though very gently. Harry has fallen into a light doze. Draco is grateful, as it keeps his unsettling eyes closed. Not that Draco is unsettled by them, mind. It's simply that he knows Harry would prefer everyone didn't know about it.
But Hermione returns presently, and she is livid. Colour and all. "They say there's nothing to be done," she hisses. "He will either sit his NEWT today, or he will fail it. They, of course, recommend that he fail! DADA! His strongest subject!"
"He's hardly got a bad subject, except History," Draco murmurs distractedly, mainly to hide his surprise that they haven't a better solution. Still, it must show in his face.
"It is too late to do anything to reschedule it, they say," Hermione explains, seething. "The WEA doesn't give special dispensation to dark creatures."
Draco blinks. "Dark creatures…like the Boy Saviour?" That seems preposterous. Everyone else gives special dispensation to Potter. Potter can do anything he likes, at any time. It's really quite sickening, except that it works to Draco's advantage more often than not.
"Memories are short indeed," she agrees, then blurts, "Oooh! I could wring their necks!"
"Yes, well, perhaps it would be better to simply let them test Harry," Draco suggests.
Now Ron looks alarmed. Only, the alarm slowly recedes, until only a look of evil remains. For once, all three of them are in complete agreement. Those bastards won't postpone Harry's test? Then let them test him.
* * *
Harry follows the Alpha through the corridors, letting the familiar scents comfort him as they ebb and flow on their currents of air. He would follow the Alpha anywhere, really, and so he is unconcerned. It is even better, though, when he is surrounded by scents of both Alpha and pack. The female and the male of his small pack flank him even now, and they scent of mischief and protectiveness, of anger and dominance. But he does not challenge them, and they are not concerned with him. They lay comforting hands on him now and then, and enclose him in warmth, and all is well. All is right with the world.
They sit on the cold, stone floor for a time, and Harry is uncomfortable in his skin, scratching now and then, here and there. The fur on his head is too long—the fur on his body, too short. His legs and arms are disproportionate and he is hungry. His stomach growls, but he is too tired to hunt now. And lazy. He knows that usually meat is brought for him.
He curls into a ball, his head and shoulders resting in the Alpha's lap, and the Alpha strokes his skin where the fur is too short and comforts him. The Alpha and his other pack-mates all gurgle and growl in that way they have that Harry does not understand, but it is mild and still, and Harry dozes in its softness.
For a long time, he dozes, and the female leaves, only to return again and lay warm, soft hands on Harry's cheeks and make more soft noises. And later, the Alpha goes, and Harry nuzzles into the female’s lap instead. The other male is still not as comfortable with him and besides, the Alpha does not wish for the other male to touch Harry. It is of no consequence, as the Alpha soon returns, and Harry is again back where he belongs. He sighs into comfort.
All too soon, however, there is movement again, and they all stand. Harry stands as well. He follows the Alpha to a door, and then the Alpha murmurs unintelligible growls and yelps in his ear, before urging him forward toward a tall man he recognizes neither by scent nor by sight. Harry turns eyes on the man to test his place, for the Alpha has not indicated anything to Harry about who this man is. Harry growls himself, testing, testing, and the man shrinks and shrinks, and the Alpha chuckles with pleasure behind Harry and gives him a soft kiss and grumble-growls more positive noises in his ear before disappearing.
Harry is left alone with the incredible shrinking man, and does not know why he is here. But Harry knows that this man is weaker than he. The man stinks of lovely fear and adrenaline. The man shakes almost imperceptibly, and straightens the little eyes he wears over his own. The man yelps and barks little sounds that Harry does not understand, and Harry waits for the entire situation to make sense.
After a time, Harry grows tired of waiting and sits down, and the man smells less afraid and looks upon him with confusion. Then the confusion disappears, and the man takes out a long twig and waves it about and barks and yelps and Harry feels a need to jump up and dance, though he does not.
Harry blinks, scowls, stands again and moves nearer to the strange man with the twig. Harry has seen such twigs before. The Alpha has a twig, as do his pack-mates. Harry himself does not have a twig just now, but he wouldn't know what to do with it anyway. The man retreats before him as he approaches, but soon, the man has backed himself against a hard place, and Harry, though smaller, has the advantage. He reaches for the twig and takes it. The man looks helplessly at Harry, then reaches behind himself and takes a white leaf and another little twig and scratches with the twig on the leaf. Harry is fascinated, because wherever the twig scratches, silver-black furrows are carved into the leaf, though the leaf is not destroyed. And when he reaches a finger to touch the furrows, he cannot feel them. And when he tastes his finger, he cannot taste them either. Unless it is the slightly metallic taste that lingers.
The man stares at him with a worried little frown then reaches behind himself again to put down the leaf and twig. He pushes lightly against Harry's chest, and Harry growls. The man rumbles quiet, gentle barking, and Harry does not understand, but the man moves very slowly indeed, because he is not trying to challenge. Harry can see that and scent it as well. So he moves a bit away. And when the man reaches for the twig in Harry's hand, Harry moves away further, keeping the twig.
"Growl-growl yelp growl yelp," says the man, and reaches for the twig again.
Harry doesn't know what he himself would need the twig for anyway, so he returns it, because sometimes Alphas are generous, and even though he is not an Alpha, it is nice to pretend.
The man bows his head in submission and barks again, and Harry stands up just a little bit straighter, to acknowledge his own generosity.
The man then goes to a door behind the table and opens it, and out jumps a creature that is—
—Evil. The Evil that must not be named. The Evil that should be dead—
—and attacks.
Harry gasps in terrified betrayal, and in his blind horror, transforms to his lupine form, and pounces. He still remembers the agony of skin being stripped from muscle, of devices being shoved inside him. Of Cruciatus. And of slitting a throat from ear to ear. He leaps toward red eyes and perfect, milk-white skin. He sinks his teeth into the soft, warm life of it, and pulls out its throat.
Once it has dropped, Harry moves to lay paws on the creature, which neither tastes nor smells like Him, though it still bears His likeness. He licks the blood from his muzzle and wonders whether he is hungry enough to eat the warm, bloody meat before him. It does not take long to decide that yes, he is.
The man who is not dead barks and yelps and suddenly the meat is gone. Harry retreats skittishly, confused. He feels very small in this form, and so transforms again, into his human form, in which he at least reaches the man's chin. Still, the man looks and smells even more nervous now than he had done before. The man is openly quaking.
The door opens again, and this time, Harry recognises the creature immediately. It is called dementor. The knowledge bubbles up from deep inside himself, and images of deadly lips and icy evening fog fill him. He does not understand it all, but he knows his life depends upon this, and so he gathers his magic about himself, then hurls it at the dementor creature. With his magic, he creates an image of the Alpha to protect himself, and the Alpha is glowing white and massive in his lupine beauty. The dementor retreats before his Alpha's radiance, then disappears, and the Alpha turns to acknowledge Harry before dissipating.
Harry is tired. He is shaken. He misses his Alpha. He moves toward the door, and when the man barks and yelps at him, Harry ignores it. He attempts to open the door, but fails. The man barks and yelps again and Harry turns to him in frustration, then growls back. But this time, the man does not seem cowed by his fear. He waves his twig about in the air and makes sounds Harry does not understand, though he does recognise them as being meaningful sounds.
Then things begin to happen. Bad things. And Harry begins to understand, as he ducks and dodges, that this man is evil. Like the Other. And so Harry fights back.
When Hermione Thinks About It... by colibri
Chapter 7: When Hermione thinks about it…
"Oh bloody hell!" mutters Ron as he paces to and fro, to and fro.
"He's all right," Hermione assures, but her tone is overly hard and it screams of her terror that something will go wrong. Even more wrong than it already has. She has never seen Harry so completely barking, (no pun intended). "It's only another minute or so," she adds.
"One minute, twenty-three seconds," Draco corrects, and he is leaning bonelessly against the jamb, his wand out and ready. Hermione is fairly certain he will barge in there immediately upon the expiration of Harry's time.
"Do you think he'll hurt the proctor?" asks Ron.
"Of course not," says Hermione, but she looks to Draco for confirmation, and he does not answer. He doesn’t even look at her. "Draco?"
"He might," Draco says with a shrug that looks completely dispassionate, but isn't. Hermione knows better. Draco is worried. How could he not be? If Harry hurts the proctor, he could be expelled or put in Azkaban. "But he hasn't yet," Draco adds. "I've a monitoring spell on the room."
"But that's cheating—" Hermione blurts.
"Oh Merlin," Draco whispers to himself, the disgust evident in every plane of his body and face.
"That's not what I meant," Hermione adds quickly, colouring severely with embarrassment. After all, Draco has already taken his NEWT.
"I'm not cheating, Mudblood; I'm protecting my fucking fiancé!" he whispers harshly.
Hermione is somewhat taken aback by the use of that particular epithet, but not so taken aback that she doesn't place a hand in the centre of Ron's chest to keep him from attacking Draco, who has completely forgotten their presence already.
"I knew he was only acting as if he'd changed," Ron seethes.
"He's under a great deal of stress," Hermione offers magnanimously.
"And we're not??!" Ron yelps predictably.
"Later!" Hermione whispers, only then their attention is grabbed by Draco throwing the chamber door open.
"Harry!" Draco calls, and Hermione and Ron run in on his heels, then slam the door behind themselves, to keep out the other curious students.
It’s a good thing. Harry is straddling the proctor's hips. He is in human form, but he holds half a wand in each hand, and the man is unconscious. Hermione says this to herself over and over again, like a mantra. The man is unconscious. The man is unconscious. Because she refuses to believe that the man could be dead.
"Harry, come with me a moment, luv?" Draco says calmly.
Harry drops the wand halves and gets up immediately to rush to Draco's side, where he pushes his head into Draco's underarm and wraps arms about Draco's middle and whines a little bit.
Hermione is terrified of what might’ve happened, but she forces herself to move to the body sprawled on the floor, then reaches to feel for a pulse—searches, searches, and there, finds one. Finds a pulse. She shudders her relief. "He's alive," she says, but her voice comes out a whisper. "He's alive," she repeats, then stands quickly, closing her eyes for a moment against the blood rush, then, "Let's get Harry out of here. Ron, you go inform the Headmaster."
"No need, Miss Granger. No need," sing-songs Dumbledore's voice from the now-open door to the chamber. And in comes Madam Pomfrey on his heels. The door closes behind her. "And how is Mr Potter, then?" The Headmaster asks in that terrible twinkling way, as if this is all some mammoth jest. Hermione is furious.
"Not a scratch on him," says Draco unconcernedly. "I'd like to take him back to his rooms now, if I might?"
"You may," says the Headmaster. "We will know where to find you, should you be needed."
Hermione watches them go, amazed at how very protective Draco seems, and how completely dependent Harry has become on him. She's still not entirely certain she likes it, but—well, at least it seems that Draco is willing, and likely resourceful enough to manage.
A groan emits, presently, from the proctor. "What in Merlin's name was wrong with that boy?"
"Just a little bump to the head," says Madam Pomfrey. "Likely occurred when he fell. I've taken care of it now," she adds and stands. "If I'm no longer needed here?" she asks of the Headmaster, then at his slight nod, she sweeps from the room.
"Mr Potter, as you know, suffers from Lycanthropy," the Headmaster says in reply to the proctor's question. His eyes follow the man as he gingerly rises from the floor to stand on his own two feet.
The man seems surprised that he has no difficulty standing, and that he is not dizzy. "I was under the impression that Lycanthropy did not allow for at-will transformation in and out of the wolf form," says the man, sounding more business-like now that he can.
"Well, Mr MacGregor," says the Headmaster, "Mr Potter has also perfected the Animagus transformation. He is, as you know, extraordinarily talented."
"He’s quite barking!" says the proctor, hands now joining the fray, gesturing. He seems to have forgotten Ron and Hermione's presence entirely.
"Well it's just before the full moon, now, isn't it?" interjects Ron, all in a huff. "Having a bad cycle, he is. It wasn't really fair of you lot to force him to sit his NEWT today, but you were going to fail him if he didn't!"
"All right, Mr Weasley," says the Headmaster with a magnanimous smile that sets Hermione's teeth on edge. "Perhaps you should wait in the corridor, as you've not yet taken your NEWT, eh?"
"What's this got to do with my NEWT?" asks Ron, the betrayal thick in his voice.
"Run along, Mr Weasley," says Dumbledore, and Ron stalks from the room. Hermione is very surprised that she's not been forced to leave as well, though it is likely only because she knows how to keep silent. Once Ron is gone, however, the door slamming in his wake, the Headmaster continues. "Mr Weasley's sentiments are well-taken, however," he says. "It would have been safer for everyone involved if Mr Potter had been allowed to take his NEWT at another time."
"Well, I'm not entirely certain of that," says Mr MacGregor, who moves to retrieve his parchment and quill. He writes a few things upon it before continuing. "Mr Potter completed every objective, though not necessarily in the way we were expecting. I found his dispatching of the boggart particularly creative and…brutal. His Patronus was powerful and fully formed. And he seemed to show no reaction whatever to the Imperious Curse. Even stark raving as he was, he bested me in a duel, when he was really only supposed to keep from being incapacitated."
"Perhaps it may have been safer for you however, Mr MacGregor," says the Headmaster, still twinkling, and holds out the halves of the wizard's wand to him. Hermione doesn't recall him picking them up, but that’s not really so surprising.
Mr MacGregor accepts the halves of his wand from Dumbledore and smirks. Hermione can't believe how fortunate they were, to have such a reasonable proctor for Harry's examination. "Well, it was a fascinating experience, nonetheless. But no, you're right, I think. I am lucky he did not choose to kill me. The boy is dangerous."
"He was only afraid of you, sir," Hermione blurts, then colours immediately. Still, there is nothing for it but to continue, now. "Can you imagine what it must be like? Locked in a room with a wizard you don't know, and can't understand a word of what's going on. Then the wizard attacks you, without provocation…. I can assure you, sir, that Harry is as gentle as a puppy when he's allowed to simply laze about and mind his own business. He really can't care less about the rest of the world when Draco—Mr Malfoy, I mean—is about."
"Indeed," says Dumbledore, effectively cutting Hermione's lecture short. Of course, she had finished already. "Perhaps you'd like to go and check on your friends, then, Miss Granger?"
Hermione doesn't roll her eyes. "Yes, Headmaster," she says, as if she can think of absolutely nothing she would rather do at the moment. "Good day, Professor Dumbledore, Mr MacGregor," she says, and then leaves, careful not to slam the door behind herself.
Ron is there waiting for her. He's been pacing, but he rushes over, now. "So, what happened, then?" he asks.
"Nothing," Hermione admits. "I opened my mouth in Harry's defence and was subsequently dismissed." She sighs, but is certain that it is all within the Headmaster's machinations. He allowed her to stay for a reason, and it was likely to allow her to say her piece. So she has, now, and so has Ron, and now it is up to Dumbledore and Mr MacGregor and the rest of the WEA to decide what to do about it.
"I can't believe how unfair it was of them," Ron seethes, shoulders hunched and muscular arms crossed over his chest.
Hermione is reminded of the feel of his heated skin stretched across those taut muscles, and the strength of his hands on her hips. He is insatiable, Ron is, but he still hasn't got over his obsession with Harry. She tries not to be annoyed by it. She tries to think it's sexy, like some of the other girls. It's just, sometimes Ron seems to forget she even exists when he's fretting over Harry. Granted, he's always been one to fret over Harry, even before the infatuation. That's what she tends to recall when she only thinks on it a bit more. Ron and Harry are best friends, and were before she ever came into the picture. It's something she has to respect. And frankly, she's much happier with the current state than she'd been when Harry had been avoiding them both at the beginning of Fall term, or even worse, year last, when it had been only Ron and her together. "Well, Mr MacGregor seems very fair," she says, though she is loath to get her hopes up. "It sounded as if Harry managed to complete all of the testing objectives satisfactorily despite his difficulties."
Ron's eyebrows lift—he seems impressed. "Blimey," he breathes, then smirks. "That's our Harry."
"Indeed," Hermione says, cautiously. "I was going to check on him, though—see how he's feeling."
"I'm certain he's feeling quite wonderfully languid right now, 'Mione. I don't think you need to check on him," and the meaning is very clear. "Don't give me that, 'Ronald Weasley how dare you be so crude,' look. You know as well as I what Harry is about when he's like this."
Hermione has to agree, though she doesn't feel much like smiling just now, so she doesn't.
"Come on, luv," says Ron and draws her into an embrace. He's all comfort and certainty now, as if there is no way Harry can possibly lose. And it doesn't seem likely, does it, that Harry can lose at this stage? After everything he's been through? After everything they've all been through? "Stay with me until my NEWT. Then we can…relax a bit together, righ'?"
Hermione is certain she can feel Ron's body temperature go up several degrees. Or perhaps that's her own. It makes her wonderfully breathless, when he turns his seduction on her. "Righ'," she manages, but only at a whisper, and Ron knows he's won. Granted, she has him so very well-trained, it's always a win for her as well. He's so brilliantly talented with his tongue.
Ginny by colibri
Chapter 8: Ginny
"Have you got a mo'?"
She looks up to see Colin standing across from her and waiting to sit, as if she finds him the least bit objectionable and may not want him contaminating her space with his presence. How he ever got into Harry's bed with his meekness, she will never know. Well, except that Harry is a frightful whore. "Good evening, Colin. Are you well today?"
"Er, yeah, very well," he says and seems to decide that he might take a seat.
"Glad to hear that, Colin. Very glad," she says and manages not to laugh or even chuckle, as she pulls food onto her plate. Pork cutlets, runner beans. She's not entirely certain when she decided she likes runner beans, but there's something about them with pork cutlets that makes her mouth water. Or, perhaps that's simply the way Dean's lips look when he smiles. Oh Dear Merlin give me strength. It's been far too long. "So what brings you to my door, Mr Creevey?" Colin is sweet, but does not make her salivate.
"Well, I was hoping you'd be willing to look at my portfolio before I give it in to Harry and Draco," he says, not looking up at her. He is cutting into a banger, then dipping it in syrup. He looks up at her and the bite does not make it up to his mouth.
"For wedding photographer," says Ginny, to be certain she's got it right. "What's in your portfolio, Colin? Have you photographed a single wedding?"
"Not exactly," Colin admits, then takes the bite of sausage, which he chews slowly. Thoughtfully. Interminably. Or so it feels. "But I've photographed Harry before," in a voice very small indeed.
"I see," she says. There is the tiniest seed of excitement in her belly. And yes, she's still got that hint of infatuation left. Who hasn't, after all? He's the bloody saviour of the wizarding world, isn't he? And beautiful, to boot. And Merlin, if he and Draco aren't the loveliest couple ever to have walked the face of the earth. Truly. "The rumours were true, then?"
"Not exactly, no," says Colin hastily. "They're all tasteful, the ones in my portfolio," he assures. "Or I think Draco would flay me alive."
"He might anyway," Ginny assures him, "but I'd be happy to look at it, Colin. Not sure why me, though? Dean's the artist."
"I've had him look at it already. But you know Harry better than I do."
"Colin, you know him intimately."
Colin blushes crimson, and it's lovely in that way that rather plain people can look lovely, sometimes. Though he's not really unattractive so much as…unremarkable. "Not really the same as knowing him though, is it," he says. "Didn't talk much."
"Yeah, 'more' and 'harder' do not a conversation make, eh?" Ginny agrees, watching him surreptitiously from beneath her lashes. And it is priceless, the way he goes from crimson to beet-red. It almost looks unhealthy. "So where is this portfolio, then?" she asks.
"Not at the table," Colin says. "After, right?"
"All right," Ginny agrees.
"Ta, very much," says Colin, and they continue their meal.
"All righ', Gin?" comes her brother's voice from across the table, behind Colin. "Col."
"Well-well, Ronald Weasley," Ginny teases. "Does this mean you've survived yet another NEWT? Whatever would Fred and George say?"
"That Hermione's a terrible influence on me?" he asks with mock-sincerity, then loads his plate with fat-fried grease.
"That is likely what they'd say," Hermione agrees as she sits down next to Ginny and across from Ron. She gives Ginny a kiss on the cheek. "How are you, Gin? We've had no time to talk lately."
"Indeed," Ginny agrees. "I've not even got to tell you of my engagement to Dean."
Hermione's eyes go wide and she blinks, before she gets that slightly doubtful look. "You're not serious, are you?" and she's not certain, Ginny can see, though she's hoping.
"Em, no," Ginny agrees. Hermione is too gullible. Ginny has no idea how, since the girl's a bloody genius otherwise. "Not all of us are willing to marry for beauty alone."
"Don't bloody remind me," says Ron, mouth already full. He seems very sincerely disgusted, but it's old news by this point.
"I should think it difficult to forget, since you'll likely be the maid of honour, Brother," Ginny teases.
"I won't be a bloody maid of anything," Ron counters. "And Harry is not wearing a frock."
"He's not?" and Ginny is actually slightly surprised. Though only slightly.
"Even Draco doesn't want him to wear a frock," Hermione agrees. "Says if he wanted to marry a girl, he'd have married Mlle. Leoncourt," the last with a passable French accent.
"Valid point," Colin agrees.
"Shall we go, then, Colin?" Ginny asks. She's got an essay to complete for Advanced Defence this week that, frankly, she hasn't even begun.
"Oh, right, ta," he agrees, then finishes chewing, drinks the remainder of his pumpkin juice, and stands.
"Where, Gin?" asks Hermione, forgetting about the forkful of shepherd's pie halfway toward her mouth.
"Colin's going to show me his portfolio," she says with a wink only Hermione can see.
"You mean, for Harry's wedding?" Ron asks, immediately interested.
Ginny's not entirely certain why that surprises her.
"Yeah," says Colin, and he seems embarrassed about it.
"Colin wishes to test it on someone who knows Harry before giving it in, isn't that right, Col?"
But Colin doesn't even get to answer. "Well, why not let us have a look at it, then?" says Ron, and by 'us', he obviously means 'me'.
"Because you're busy eating and I'm not? Come along, Colin," Ginny says and pushes her chair in.
"I can come by and see it la—"
But Hermione interrupts him in obvious exasperation. "Ron, you'll see the bleeding portfolio when Harry sees it, won't you? He sits there and goes through them with you every day!"
And Ron is taken aback. He blinks at Hermione once, twice, speechless. Gaping.
"Well, then. Cheers," Ginny says, sure to sound overly cheerful, then nearly runs to the exit, quite well aware that Colin is racing after her.
She doesn't slow until they are outside the Great Hall and well on their way to Gryffindor. "What was that about, then?" Ginny mutters.
"Not entirely certain, really," Colin admits, "but Hermione did suggest I come to you, instead of showing the portfolio to your brother."
"Oh." Ginny is, once again, surprised. "Did she say why?"
"Something about him being biased," Colin says and shrugs. "I suppose he's too close a friend. Be a bit too much like showing it to Harry himself?"
"Of course," Ginny says. She rather thinks it has more to do with Ron's undying lust for Harry, but she won't say it aloud. Colin should be allowed to maintain his youthful naivete for as long as possible.
They arrive in the Gryffindor common room and take two chairs next to each other and facing the rest of the room, so they won't be caught unawares. Colin then takes the portfolio from a pocket and uses his wand to restore it to a normal size. "Since I've never shot a wedding before," he explains by way of introduction, "I've put together some things that come as close as I've got, as well as a few shots I've done of Harry—to show my range, right? Dean said it was a good balance."
"All right," Ginny agrees and opens the book, skipping the introductory sheet and going to the first photo. It's a shot of last year's Gryffindor quidditch team, actually. A posed shot before the game against Ravenclaw—one of a very few games they won. Still, she recalls when the photo was taken, and finds it fascinating to see everyone there again, captured for all time. To watch Ron, team captain, serious in his dedication, but also depressed because Harry is gone and no one knows where. To see herself nervous, but waving at the camera on occasion, looking above the cameraman's head, at the goals, at the rest of the pitch. Across the pitch at the Ravenclaws who are having a team meeting out of frame. She can feel the fluttering in her stomach again, despite having done much better this year.
The next page is an absolutely incredible shot from the Triwizard Tournament the year before—Harry standing protectively with Ron and Gabrielle, whilst Fleur is fussing over her sister. "How did you get this?"
"Zoom charms are a wonderful thing," he says, and she can hear the smile in his voice, though she does not look away from the photo.
Gabrielle is being enfolded in her sister's embrace and looking with just the tiniest bit of worship in her eyes over to Harry. Harry is looking at Cho, at Cedric, then blushing just the tiniest bit. Ron is looking at Hermione and Viktor, narrowing his eyes, then at Cedric and Cho; then he frowns a little and looks to Harry. "That is a bit damning, isn't it," she mutters.
"What?" Colin asks and looks more closely.
"Well, Viktor's got Hermione here, that he had to save. Cedric's got Cho. Harry's got…my brother."
"Fleur had to save her sister."
"…Fair enough," Ginny has to agree. "Ron is like a brother to Harry I suppose. But it does take on a bit of a different flavour, knowing what we know now…." She turns the page.
"Do you think it's all right to leave it in, though? I mean, with Cedric in there?"
"Yes," Ginny says, but she's not certain why, so she doesn't elaborate. This next set is easier anyway. Three muggle photos—black and white, no less. "What are these?"
"Yes…well, those are actually from a wedding," Colin says, but something about the way that he says it makes Ginny turn her head to look at him, and he's blushing. "Neighbours—friends of the family, sort of. Daughter was married over these past Easter hols. We attended. They held it in France,"
"France," Ginny is impressed. "I didn't know you went to France over the hols."
She can feel Colin nodding. "We took a portkey. They held it there for the weather, but it's still an Anglican wedding, even though it was in a Catholic country."
"Hmm," Ginny says distractedly, looking very closely at the first photo. And once she's got used to the fact that it doesn't move and that there's no colour involved at all, then she can actually see quite clearly, though before, she'd not seen anything of it. "What a lovely dress," she breathes, noting the detail—the lacing on the train and the shimmer of the fabric. "And it's all muggle-done?"
"Yeah. It was lovely, but not as magical as all that," Colin explains. In the photo, though, it looks grand. The bride and groom and several others are standing before a raised proscenium, upon which stands a man in strange robes and a very odd little skullcap. There are flowers everywhere, as at a regular wedding, but the lighting is really what captures the eye most. Light is streaming in from a patterned window above them all, and shining magically down upon the couple, as if it has been planned. And this despite the fact that it's a muggle ceremony, and they could not possibly have arranged it. But Colin continues, "The ceremony was very long, and it all takes place in one of those muggle churches with a priest saying the vows and, like," Colin is waving his hand about, now, obviously struggling to recall words, "a bishop, or some such, blessing…incense or water or…something."
The next photo, however, seems to shed some light upon why Colin has very little recollection of what took place in the ceremony. Ginny's own mouth is gaping and she's forgotten a bit of what she's doing herself. "And who, exactly, is this?" Other than the reason for your previous blush?
"Oh, yeah, er…."
She is lovely, Ginny thinks, and examines the photo more closely. They must be in a thicket or some such, for there are leaves everywhere, and the lighting is soft and full of shadows. The girl's face is all mischief and seduction, her eyes half-lidded as she peers toward the photographer, her lips parted as if caught mid-chuckle. Her finger is cocked perfectly, beckoning him into her bower. Her dress is strapless, and the soft beams of light lap gently at the delicate wings of her collarbones. Her hair is pulled up and back, away from her face, emphasising the long, slender line of her neck. She sits with her legs folded to her side, turned halfway toward the photographer. The space is close.
"It's Elizabeth's younger sister," says Colin, embarrassment putting the lie to his forced nonchalance. "Gwen."
"Gwen," Ginny agrees with a smirk and looks up at Colin. "It seems Gwen was interested in something other than her sister's wedding."
"Yes, well…yes."
When Ginny looks more closely now, she sees that Gwen is not so special-looking after all—that it is all charisma and composition. That the beauty is in Colin's eye, and Colin's artistry. Gwen is human, and full of life, and it haunts the image, imbuing it with a soul that cannot possibly be there. "This is an amazing photo, Col," she blurts.
"Er, thanks…. Dean liked it, too. That's why I put it in."
"Another bloke with talent, that one," she murmurs distractedly, but has moved on, to the third photo in the group. And it is not entirely obvious that this photo is of Gwen, but it must be, for as one takes in the elements, the continuity is obvious. It is the same thicket, the soft light and shadows still painting their patterns on pale skin. There is much more of her skin, now, and what is exposed is what we did not see, before. What we saw before, is now covered by thick waves of dark, glossy hair…except the smile. The smile is there, barely visible, and a delicate hand. The rest, languor. "Colin," Ginny tsks.
"She asked me to take that one," he says, all defensive embarrassment and crimson shame.
"What? 'Here, Col…why not capture my post-coital recuperation for posterity?'"
"Well yes," Colin agrees, obviously still surprised, himself, when he thinks about it. "I mean, not in those words exactly, but she said she wanted me to…you know…and then…you know…after…."
"There was entirely too little information in that statement, my dear Colin," Ginny says with a most eloquent eye-roll. "If, after all, I had known; I can assure you I would not have asked."
Colin groans, then whispers nearly inaudibly, "She asked me to take her virginity, and then to capture her first moments as a woman, for her to keep forever."
Ginny thinks that's actually a bit romantic, now that she's heard it. "Oh," she says, and she sounds as surprised as she is. "Well, then," and she moves on.
The following four pages of photos are of leaving classes from year last—one from each house. They're the official leaving photos commissioned by the school every year, and Colin had the honour of taking those photos. They're perfect, of course, and quite staged. "Those are only, you know, to show that I can take the standards, right?" he explains hastily.
"Of course," Ginny agrees. And then, the breath is knocked out of her. "Merlin," she says, only she sounds tiny and weak.
"Yeah," says Colin, and he sounds the same way. He leans his chin against her shoulder, and stares at the same photo she is staring at. And it is Harry, of course. Harry, at the beginning of Fall Term, as he stands, alone in the Great Hall—or as near to alone as to make no difference. He is wearing his school uniform—swimming in it. He looks so lost and nervous, and so desperately thin. She'd forgotten how very unhealthy he'd looked in those early days. Still worse, however, is the air of absolute terror that hangs about him like a black mist. He does not know he is being photographed, and so he does not acknowledge the viewer. He glances to either side occasionally, and looks toward the photographer occasionally, as if searching for someone, yet afraid to find them. "He looks…much better now," Colin says.
"Yeah. Looking at the photo, I can feel the terror he was in."
"There are better ones of him—I mean, more comfortable ones," Colin assures.
"Do you have any of Draco?"
Colin pulls his chin from her shoulder then, and nods. Ginny can feel it, though she does not look at him. "Yeah, there's an absolutely brilliant one of him on the pitch."
So Ginny continues, and is consistently impressed with the photos Colin has included. They are not all pretty or nice, but they're all very, very good, capturing a moment in time, capturing a soul, and displaying it for the viewer. And he's right, of course. There's a fantastic shot of Draco running a quaffle toward the Ravenclaw goal only a few months ago, his face frozen in impossible determination, his entire body taut as a bowstring. "Why's it frozen?" she asks. It is a wizarding photo, after all.
"I had to capture the shot at such a high rate of speed, there's not enough of a slice of time for any but that single emotion—that single thought—I capture to show through. Harry gave me a book for Christmas—has loads of interesting techniques and the like. I'd never even considered taking this type of photo with a wizarding camera before."
The last two pages are breathtaking. "Harry let you take these?"
"You'd be surprised, I think, at what Harry let me take."
"I was already surprised he let you take him to bed," Ginny admits. "So the rumours weren't so far from true, then?"
"He let me take some pornographic photos, but I was to keep them entirely to myself."
"I'd hardly call these pornographic," Ginny disagrees. They're nudes, certainly, but…tasteful. She wants to cry. "He's just…." She shakes her head.
"He's unbelievably lovely," Colin agrees. "But these were hardly the pornographic shots. Draco would kill me if he saw those."
"So would Ron," Ginny agrees. "Have they seen these?"
"One of them," he says and points to one wherein Harry appears to be sleeping, all in sepia tones, and though he is nude, there is nothing really exposed. It is the last in the album. The one before it, however, is a profile shot of a naked Harry sitting on a bed and chuckling wryly, his long, long hair pulled all to the side facing away from the camera. He's completely comfortable in his skin, not even paying a care to the fact that his privates are showing. He shakes his head a little, then looks over toward Colin (and the camera) and speaks, though he can't be heard. He then reaches toward the camera and blocks out the view.
"What's he saying?" Ginny asks. The entire thing loops through again, and she finds herself smiling along with the joke, though she can't hear it.
Colin snorts. "Nothing profound," he says, then turns the page gently before closing the portfolio and taking it back.
"No, really…?"
"He's saying, 'Come on, Col. The camera goes on the tripod, your hands go on me.' I said I needed a few directed shots. He disagreed, then, as you can see."
"And so ten seconds later, you're fucking him?"
"Something like that, yeah," Colin says, and he seems a little less shy now than he was at the start. Ginny supposes that's only to be expected. "The last I took whilst he was sleeping and had no choice."
Ginny sighs silently, staring at her own hands. "I am so jealous, Colin," she suddenly blurts and is surprised at how embarrassed she isn't.
"Yeah, me, too," Colin agrees. "He's the best lay I've ever had."
"The best lay??" because Ginny can't believe he's said it. "And as if you've had a million!"
"Well he wouldn't really let it be anything more than that, now, would he?" and there is just the hint of bitterness in his tone. "He or Draco, anyway. That’s all I ever had of him. So don't be overly jealous. I wanted so very much more, and I've got a pretty good idea what I'm missing."
Ginny can sympathise, she supposes, but she's not entirely certain Colin has a better idea what he's missing than she does.
But perhaps.
"Enough about that. Have you got any comments on the portfolio?"
"No," she admits. "It's fantastic. I can't imagine what you should change. I don't know him that well. I think it's fine…. If you want another opinion, I'd ask Hermione."
She stands, then, and he stands, hastily, as well. She smiles apologetically. "Thanks for showing it, though," and it's impossible to hide how depressed she's become. She'd honestly believed herself over Harry, and she still does, actually. But it's a bittersweet thing, regardless. "Good night, Colin."
"G'night," Colin agrees. "And ta."
She gives him a little smile, and takes the stairs up.
Epiphany by colibri
Chapter 9: Epiphany
There's something impossibly lovely in the delicacy of his bone structure, now that he's so achingly thin. And there's an undeniable allure in the charcoal smudge of his lashes on those pale cheeks, and the shadowing darkness of the perfectly shaped brows. The lips are a bit thinner than ideal, but he's English, after all, not French or Italian or some other exotic, Latin lover. He's just English. And exhausted.
Draco leans back in the chair again, to take in the full form stretched out before him. He had worked that body over. He had shown it no mercy. He had wrung every possible ounce of pleasure out of it. For hours. Harry wasn't waking any time soon. Still, it had surprised Draco that even after all of that, Harry still hadn't been lucid. It had been a struggle to even keep Harry in his human form, some of the time. But Draco had managed, mainly by withholding sex until Harry switched back. It had taken Harry about three changes and no more than fifteen minutes to figure it out.
Draco is feeling languid now, and very, very fulfilled. He is preening at Harry's loveliness, and at how well it matches his own perfection. He is gloating at Harry's incredible power, and complete dependence on him—on Draco—though he's not entirely aware of this last bit, himself. There are many things, after all, that Draco knows—yet does not know—about himself and his own motivations. Most of the time, these are things that he simply does not care to think about, and so does not. There are so many other things that require thought, after all.
For example, Draco does not think about the dwindling light in the night sky outside these walls, nor what that means. This, despite the fact that he thinks of how lovely it would have been to share the sunset with Harry. Draco does not think about waking Harry, so that Harry can shift into his wolf form; nor does he think about how very interesting it would be to watch such a change at least once, nor how painful it would be for Harry to relive it. All of this despite the fact that he makes certain he and Harry are both wearing their necklaces, and that he wonders whether he should require Dobby to bring food for Draco as well as meat for Harry, since they've neither of them eaten supper.
And so, it is with a great deal of surprise and very little guilt that Draco greets Harry's first stomach-wrenching scream. And it is with both undisguised fascination and slowly-dawning horror that he watches the progression of Harry's change from man into beast. In fact, he can barely keep the bile from seeking its freedom in a forcefully projectile fashion. And while very few words actually form themselves in his mind as he watches bones break and reform, as he watches skin stretch and discolour, as he watches fur push itself out of Harry's pores; one phrase does bubble its way to the surface. I didn't know.
I didn't know! screams the only one of Draco's many inner voices he can hear, and it is weeping and gibbering in terrorised defence. I didn't know! Because really, one of those things that Draco knows and yet doesn't, is that he failed to wake Harry on purpose, because Draco wanted to witness the change. He now hopes never to witness it again.
Fuck, comes Harry's mind-voice, weakly.
I…didn't realize the time, Draco replies, then uses his wand to clean up the blood and other fluids that Harry's change has left to soil the bed. He hopes Harry doesn't become angry—it's not Draco’s fault, after all.
Just…just give me a quarter of an hour, or so, to recover. I wasn't lucid at all, lately, was I?
Yeah, not even a little bit, Draco agrees. "We have yet to see how you did on your DADA practical."
Oh shite! I'd entirely forgotten about it!
No, in fact, you did not. You simply had little choice. You had to sit the exam today or fail it, so you sat it. The proctor, Mr MacGregor, was relatively unharmed at the end of the exam, though he was also unconscious.
Oh bloody hell, Harry says and hides his muzzle beneath both paws with his eyes closed. It's darling—far more so than it would have been had Harry been in human form. And this despite the fact that Harry, in human form, can be almost excessively cute—a fact that Draco would never tell him. They're going to lock me in Azkaban, he sends morosely. Will you help me escape, Draco?
"I would certainly assist you if it were to become necessary; but I can assure you, darling: It will not be necessary." Lucius Malfoy would have been able to arrange things, and Lucius Malfoy was an evil git. Draco has no question in his mind that he will be able to arrange a deal for Harry, should it come to that. "Are you hungry?"
Bloody hell, Harry's mental voice mumbles, sounding completely depressed, and obviously not acknowledging Draco at all.
"Of course, you are," Draco answers himself. "Dobby!" he summons, then forgets about it. "Mother is doing much better, now. The withdrawal has all but ceased its physical symptoms. She read Father's letter to her today."
She did? Did you speak about the wedding at all? Harry sounds guarded but willing to change the subject.
"In fact, I told her that you and I have been perusing portfolios together, and that we are still completely undecided about just about everything."
That's certainly fair, Harry agrees.
And then Dobby enters, jabbering at Harry in that terrible house-elf voice. Dobby hates Draco, of course, and the feeling is almost completely mutual. The only thing Dobby has to recommend him, other than the fact that he looks much less ridiculous than every other house elf now that he wears proper clothing; is that he takes care of Harry, and was absolutely key in the plan to kill Voldemort. Draco had—anonymously, mind—slipped Dobby a few pairs of socks himself for that piece of bravery. It reminds Draco suddenly of how very pleased he is to have Harry lying there on the bed before him. Even though Harry is currently stuck in wolf form. "Is it miserable being a wolf all night?" he asks, because he wishes to know.
Harry is distracted from Dobby's petting. I don't think about it much, lately, Harry thinks. And really, it's not so bad, with you about to keep me company.
Perhaps I should join you sometime, so that we can play.
Hmmm. Let's think about that one for a bit, shall we? Harry asks, but he sounds very amused, indeed.
"Harry Potter and Draco Malfoy! Dobby has a package for you that he's delivering!" which he removes from a pocket and restores. He then places it on the floor a foot or so away from where Harry sits next to his bowl of raw rabbit meat. Draco is not really looking at the bowl of raw meat, which is made easier by the fact that he's not overly interested in seeing what the house elf has brought.
Thank him for me, Draco? Harry sends.
"Harry Potter thanks you, Dobby," Draco says without inflection.
"It is always a great honour to serve Harry Potter!" Dobby exclaims, then disappears.
He has entirely too much energy, Harry's internal voice mutters.
"Agreed."
Draco begins to devour the beef Wellington he has been served without really tasting it. He realizes that the food here at Hogwarts is considered superb by most, but his own house elves back at the Manor prepare far better fare. The food at Hogwarts is institutional, and there's simply no way around that fact. Cooking in large quantity is simply not conducive to grand artistry, an—
Draco, could you open this package for me, please?
Draco has to focus in on what Harry has said before he realises what has been asked. And then he uses his wand and the package opens itself. It is a book, so Draco sets it to open itself to the first page. A few moments of silence pass, then—
Oh, Harry says.
"What?" Draco asks, but he's still eating and not overly interested. Until—
"It's a portfolio."
—and Draco's thought processes go something a bit like this: Night now, no owl post, unless it's express. But for a portfolio? Not likely. Internal? Fucking hell. "It's that pathetic Creepy boy, isn't it," Draco seethes and has forgotten entirely about his supper.
If you mean Colin Creevey, then yes, Harry sends, as if he doesn't believe for a moment that Draco is as murderous as he actually is.
But Harry is really very incorrect in his assumptions, Draco thinks, though not in so many words or—really—any. "I don't want you even saying his name!" Draco growls.
I didn't say it, then, did I now? Could you please turn this page for me?
Draco is so overcome, he can barely breathe. Yet, "Incendio!" Draco manages, with every bit of will he possesses which, at this point, is quite a lot.
Unfortunately, as soon as he hears it, the bloody Gryffindor, in his shock, jumps into the line of the spell, and the entire chamber stinks of burning fur before Draco manages the wherewithal to douse the flames Harry has burst into. The level of stench is extremely unfortunate in itself, of course, but mainly because it is symptomatic of how very angry Draco had been, and how very powerful the spell he'd cast. Harry is…words should not describe it.
"Oh no," Draco whispers and rushes to his knees next to the still-smoking form. "Ohnonononono," but he cannot even touch Harry—the charred flesh is—the patches of hair…Oh Harry, say something, love… and a tear falls upon the crisped skin.
But Harry does not.
What is it they say about those who love us hurting us? I can't remember… by colibri
Chapter 10: What is it they say about those who love us hurting us? I can't remember…
Harry awakens in the hospital wing and is uncertain what is real and what is not. He cannot recall why he is here this time, and cannot truly recall whether he left here any of the other times that he has been here. It's a strange, deja vu-like feeling that's really very uncomfortable. There's nothing wrong with him that he can tell, however, and that's worth something. He has a feeling it means the memory he has of being a werewolf is true. It is further supported by the fact that he can scent Madam Pomfrey in her office. "Madam Pomfrey?" he calls, and is glad he needn't wait long.
The woman emerges from her offices presently, her face betraying nothing. Her voice is as crisp and matter-of-fact as ever. "How are you feeling, then, Mr Potter?"
"Perfectly fine," Harry answers.
"Excellent, Mr Potter."
"May I be excused, then?" Harry asks.
"I'm afraid not, Mr Potter."
This surprises Harry mainly because he had been expecting to be let go. There is, after all, nothing the matter with him now. "Pardon?" he says, and knows he sounds a bit daft but…well, he's not daft. Only dreadfully confused.
"You're to remain here, Mr Potter," says Madam Pomfrey, already moving away.
"But…" why is she escaping? "Might I at least see Draco?"
"No, Mr Potter, I'm afraid you shan't," and then she is gone, and Harry is not, and there is something fundamentally wrong, here. He doesn't get out of bed, mainly because he fears that Madam Pomfrey will know, (which she would). He searches about, desperately, for something to write on and write with, but finds nothing. He wants to scream—is about to scream. Only—
"Harry, you're awake!" says Hermione with a large, uncomfortable smile plastered onto her face. Harry blinks, confused by her discomfiture. She leans down to give little kisses to either of Harry's cheeks, then sits down on the side of his bed and takes his hands into her own. "You're looking much better!"
"Thank you," Harry says, because that's what one says when one has been given a compliment. "Where's Ron?"
"He's…er…not sure, really." She's lying, it's painfully obvious. "But Harry!" all cheerful excitement again, "I've brought something for you!" and she pulls out a portfolio. "Colin's Portfolio."
And Harry suddenly recalls everything. He wishes he hadn't. "I don't need it," he says.
"Have you already decided, then?" Hermione asks, eyebrows knitting together every-so-slightly. Prettily.
"It's a moot point, because I'm not marrying Malfoy," Harry says and slides himself down, awkwardly, until he is covered toe-to-chin by sheets and blanket.
Hermione deflates with a great sigh, holding the portfolio against her breasts and looking sadly at Harry. Tiredly. "Oh, Harry," she says.
Harry wants to scream but, once again, he does not. "I don't care," he mutters. "Why are they keeping me here?"
"I can't be certain," Hermione offers, "but it's likely to keep you and Draco apart."
"Because that's so difficult," Harry mutters sarcastically and rolls his eyes. "I've not actually got a death wish."
"They may also be trying to keep you away from Ron," Hermione says, and her face is now flushed scarlet.
"Because…no, I don't want to know. Something stupid involving testosterone and Draco, I'm guessing. I think they'd prefer to keep me away from the general student populace."
"They may have to, technically," Hermione offers, "though it's unlikely. You haven't finished your NEWTs yet, though, and they're going to allow you to complete them in time for this marking cycle." She sounds like she can hardly believe it. Harry supposes that he agrees.
"I've only got the written DADA and Herbology left, right?" he asks and waits for Hermione's nod. "So they're not going to force me to re-sit the DADA practical?"
"I doubt it. I'm nearly positive that you passed it. There'd be no reason."
Harry closes his eyes for a few moments. "I'm exhausted," he murmurs, but it's apropos of nothing. "Why are they letting you speak to me?"
"They trust me not to upset you."
"You brought me the portfolio."
Hermione shrugs, and it is a strange gesture on her. "I thought you could cope. You've survived far worse."
"Barely…. He didn't mean to set me on fire, you know," Harry admits to himself.
"I never thought he did. Not for a single moment."
"He watched me go through the phase transformation. Simply didn't wake me."
Hermione's lip curls involuntarily. "That's not very nice," she grants.
"He realised that afterward," Harry concedes. "The stench of guilt was…Yeah. I never thought he'd go from such a place of guilt, to jealous enough to destroy. I've run out of ways to describe the pain he has inflicted on me, 'Mione. Life is painful enough without my lover adding to it."
"I agree, Harry. I'm very sorry."
"I don't know whether I'm strong enough to let him go," Harry admits calmly. He's not entirely certain he wants to be discussing this with Hermione. He'd really rather be having sex with…well, someone.
"You don't have to think about it right now, Harry."
"What is it they say about people you love hurting you, 'Mione? I can't remember."
"I can't either, Harry. Do you think Colin would hurt you this way?"
Harry looks at her helplessly, then blinks. "I don't love him."
"I suppose he couldn't, then," Hermione agrees.
When she leaves, the portfolio is still lying on Harry's bed.
* * *
Harry is allowed to leave not long after, and takes the portfolio back to his rooms before showering, changing and leaving again. He thinks it's because they've listened in on his conversation and know he no longer wishes to marry Draco. He can't recall the last time Draco was truly happy. He wonders if it was in May, when Slytherin won the Quidditch Cup. He doesn't wish to consider that he might have been able to make Draco happy. He doesn't think it's ever happened, really. He finds it amusing that he slept through his final transformation day this cycle. His burns had been severe. Still, there is nary a scar left from the ordeal.
"Harry Potter," says Justin. "Er…can I help you?"
"Not certain," Harry admits. "Is there anyone here interested in…ah…walking with me?"
Justin blinks in confusion for several moments before asking, "Pardon?"
"Is there anyone there? In your common room?"
"Er…yes?"
"Is anyone in there interested in taking a walk with me?"
"Er…shall I ask?"
"If you would? That would be very kind," Harry says, all earnestness and gratitude.
"Right…." Justin Finch-Fletchley leaves Harry waiting outside the Hufflepuff common room and the door closes behind him, only to open again several long minutes later. "Boy or girl?" he asks.
"…Either?" Harry asks, but then thinks better of it. "Boy."
"Outside?"
"Er…whatever he wants?"
Justin disappears again, but not for as long this time. When he returns, he says, "You do realise that this is a very strange way to get a date, don't you?"
"I'm aware of that, yes," Harry agrees.
"And you also realise that anyone who would agree to this has a bit of a suicide wish, right?"
"…You mean because of Draco?"
"Yes."
"I can take care of Draco," Harry says, darkly.
Justin blinks at him in startlement, and Harry makes certain to reassert his eye charm. "That's an interesting effect," Justin mutters. "Don't recall having seen that one before."
"So…er…is there anyone?" Harry finally asks, since Justin doesn't seem about to tell him.
"Oh! Yeah. Timmy. I mean, Timothy Tanglewood."
Harry has never heard of him.
"He's a fifth year."
Harry doesn't groan, but he wants to. He hides his face in his hands and thinks, I'm an evil, evil lad.
"Well, it's not as if there are so many queer blokes, you must realise."
"I'm not complaining," Harry agrees, hastily.
"And he's rather mature for his age."
Harry nods, but wonders what that means, in the grand Hufflepuff scheme.
"All right, Justin, bugger off," comes a voice that has obviously gone through its change, leaving it a nice mid-baritone. It's a good first sign, Harry thinks. And then thinks no more. "Potter," and a smirk. "Did the dragon slip his leash?"
"Good night, Timmy," says Justin and closes the door behind himself, leaving Harry and 'Timmy' alone.
"Cheers, I'm Tim."
Harry takes a moment before shaking the proffered hand. He's simply thrown, because Tim is tall, and though not as tall as Draco, he must be nearly ten centimetres taller than Harry. And Tim is handsome. Nowhere near the transcendent beauty of Draco, but more handsome, certainly, than Ron. Or Colin. Oh yeah, and Tim obviously does more than practise his spells. He is…well, quite lean and muscular. Yes. "Cheers," says Harry, and, "I don't recall having seen you before," he adds, because it's the only thing running through his mind that is suitable for polite conversation.
"You tend to keep to your little clique," Tim says with a shrug and a little, lop-sided smile. "So, Harry Potter, what did you have in mind?"
"Honestly?"
"Certainly."
"Sex."
"All right. Lead on, then."
It would be more surprising, generally, if a bloke refused sex. But Harry is still surprised, mainly because this bloke is interested in sex with Harry. "Are you gay?" Harry asks, because he can't help himself, and because there is quite a walk between here and his rooms.
Tim shrugs. "By preference. I've tried girls but," a shrug. "They're awfully bitchy."
"Oh," Harry says.
"Are you?"
"What?" Harry is not putting his best foot forward this evening.
"Gay, Harry?"
"Most of my experience is with blokes," Harry hedges, because really, he's not entirely certain, but he's almost certain that he's bisexual. It's only that…well, Cho was an absolutely terrible date, and he doesn't think he should use her for comparison with, say, Draco. And he really doesn't recall very much from his days tricking.
The silence that takes them the rest of the way to Harry's rooms is so filled with thought, Harry doesn't even notice the trip.
"Harry?"
Harry shouldn't be surprised by Draco's voice, but he is. He kills the wards, opens the door with a thought, then steps aside for Tim to enter, ignoring Draco completely, who must have been waiting for him here.
Tim's brows go up, but he says nothing, to his credit. He simply enters Harry's rooms and looks around.
"Harry…"
"Are you supposed to be here?" Harry asks.
"Not exactly," Draco admits, "but they haven't forbidden it either."
"Oh. Well, I suppose I can take care of myself, now that I know I have to," and Harry turns to look at Draco, bracing himself for what he knows he will see. He is not disappointed. Draco is still stunning. Harry isn't certain how he's failed to notice that Draco's hair is growing out again. It's still short, but not as short as it had been at the start of Fall term.
"Harry, I'm sorry," Draco blurts and takes an abortive step toward Harry. He scents of frustration and desperation. "I never meant for that to hit you!" whispered.
"I know that," Harry says with a shrug. "And although I'm disappointed that you were going to unilaterally decide against Colin, I'm more concerned with the transformation, actually."
Draco's eyes widen—just slightly. It is obvious to Harry that Draco had thought Harry too incoherent to notice.
"If you'd really so desperately wished to see it, Draco, I would have let you. Because I loved you," and he is surprised that the words flow so easily, now that their relationship is dead. "I would have done anything for you. But how can I trust you? You're a sneaky, underhanded bastard. I'm devastated," and with that, he enters his rooms and slams the door, resetting his wards and putting up a silencing bubble, so that he and Tim will not be disturbed again this evening.
"So…I'm assuming that is not going to alter this evening's programme?" asks Tim, who is standing in the centre of the room, not being so presumptuous as to sit on the bed. Yet.
"It certainly shan't change the remainder of this evening's programme, no," and with that, Harry pulls off his t-shirt one-handed whilst unbuttoning the fly of his jeans with the other.
"That's quite a skill, there," says Tim with obvious amusement. "Perhaps you'd like some participation from me?"
Harry lets the tee fall to the floor but stops unbuttoning his jeans, now half-undone. "You're not a virgin," Harry says.
"That would be true," Tim agrees.
"You're awfully young, Timothy, to not be a virgin."
Tim shrugs, gliding nearer until he is before Harry with nice-sized hands on Harry's shoulders which then slide to cup his elbows. Harry looks up to drown in storm-grey eyes. Tim's hair is brown and slightly curly, though cut too short to show it much. "Summer last, I grew—and grew. I've been very busy since," with a smirk.
"Fair enough," Harry says, and his voice has diminished to a whisper. He doesn't mind so much, because it seems to draw Tim nearer. "If you top, I'll do anything you like," Harry finishes.
Tim has no objection to that plan.
* * *
Harry awakens warm and comfortable, spooned against taut flesh, a hand travelling the stretch from mid-thigh to hip and back again. "Mmm…good morning," Harry mumbles, and he is not quite awake.
"Indeed," comes a voice that is not Draco's, and Harry has to take a calming breath before he recalls, and is embarrassed at his lapse, though grateful he has not hinted at it. He pushes a bit back, grinding slightly into the turgidity at his rear. "Insatiable," says Tim with great satisfaction, "as well as lovely. Do you mind?" he asks.
Harry doesn't bother teasing. He simply says, "Please," and rolls onto his stomach. He is lubed and mounted in under fifteen seconds, and then the morning truly begins. He rubs himself into the sheets below, and manages to come very quickly indeed, then takes care of the mess so he needn't be pressed into it whilst Timothy pistons himself to a grand finale. Tim doesn't so much collapse upon Harry's back as slowly melt onto him, which is a good thing, because the lad is solid muscle and must outweigh Harry by at least two stone—perhaps closer to three.
"Where exactly do you train?" Harry says into the sheets.
"It's really not polite for a bloke to kiss and tell, is it?" Tim asks, still destroyed.
"I meant weights," Harry says with a snort.
"Ah. I have my own in the dormitory." He rolls off to lie, again, beside Harry, and sighs contentedly. "That was brilliant. What time is it?"
Harry holds out his hand and summons his wand, which has been safely packed away in his trunk for days, at least. He doesn't even bother looking when he casts the Tempus. It's 6 a.m., and Harry wonders why they're awake.
"Good, time to shower before breakfast," says Tim.
"You've finished your OWLs, yeah?"
"Yesterday….Hmm. Let me kiss you, Harry," he says, and places his hand softly on Harry's cheek when Harry turns to face him. Tim studies his face for a few long moments, a little smile turning the corners of his mouth, before he draws near. His kiss is soft as the caress of his hand, barely warming Harry's cheek. When he pulls away, the smile has grown. "It's a strange thing, Harry Potter, you do with your eyes."
Harry blinks. "Pardon?"
"The black. It's an interesting look, but rather sinister, don't you think?"
Harry can feel his eyes going wide and reasserts the colour charm in an instant.
Tim looks confused at his reaction.
"Yeah, sometimes I forget," Harry blurts.
And Tim realises. "It's not on purpose you do it. It's the green that's not natural," and he seems just shocked. As he should be. "Wh—is it because it looks so sinister that you cover it?"
Harry wishes so badly to tell him. To tell someone and see what reaction he would get. He hates lying—and there's been entirely too much of it this year. "Yeah," he says, and it doesn't mean anything, really. Only that he covers it because it looks sinister. Of course, it looks sinister because it rather is.
"Did your parents…too?" Tim asks, a little furrow between his brows as he attempts to make sense of this.
"No. It happened to me, because…well…" Harry has to take a deep breath, though he's become adept at hiding nerves. "I've used a bit more dark magic than is good for my constitution, what with the Lycanthropy. It's changed my eyes. And even though I don't use the Dark Arts anymore—well, so far, it appears permanent."
"Dark magic?"
And Harry feels betrayed that Tim has fixated there. "I used every means at my disposal to fight Voldemort," he says, defensively yes, and pulls himself out of bed. He doesn't look back on his way to the loo, despite the hastily called, "Wait! Harry—" that sounds before the door is shut and locked. Harry stares at himself in the glass, and lets the charm bleed away. Fuck them. Fuck them all.
Harry is so tired of hiding.
The Fallacy of 'Perfect Couples' by colibri
Chapter 11: The Fallacy of 'Perfect Couples'
Timmy Tanglewood has evaporated by the time Harry emerges from the showers, which is expected mainly because the boy has to get dressed and eat before classes, but also suits Harry's mood perfectly. Harry slides into his school robes, and because he is disgusted by the mockery of a Gryffindor he's become, he flexes his will, and his robes, tie, and white shirt darken to pure black. Now, when he looks at himself in the mirror he sees only a freak—not a Gryffindor freak.
It is a struggle to force himself to move over to the Gryffindor tables, but there is no other place to sit. Besides, he's already promised not to cut Hermione and Ron out of his life. And, they've already accepted what a freak he is. So he does it, though once again, his entrance has caused a scene. He glides as gracefully over to the Gryffindor table as he can, maintaining his dignity, and sits down at the table beside Ron and across from Hermione. His back is to the remaining House tables, and he is careful to avoid looking at his other housemates.
"Good morning, Harry," says Hermione.
"Good morning," Harry replies.
"What've you done to your robes, Harry?" asks Ron.
"Ron!" Hermione hisses.
"What?" Ron growls. "I'll ask if I want."
And the situation is simply so strange, Harry can't help but find it amusing in its absurdity. "I've dyed them black, Ron. Isn't it obvious?" with a smirk.
"Well why, mate? That's the real question, isn't it?"
"Because I'm a werewolf who lives in the dungeons—I'm not much of a Gryffindor. Besides, they match my eyes." He serves himself oatmeal porridge and adds sugar, sliced strawberries, milk….
"Not hiding them anymore, then?" Ron asks, and actually reaches a hand to Harry's cheek, turning his face to see into those black, black eyes.
"Ron," Hermione hisses and she sounds betrayed.
At least Ron has the decency to be embarrassed by his little display. He lets his hand drop and blushes. "Yeah, sorry, mate," he says and starts in on his breakfast, again.
"No worries," Harry mumbles and tucks in as well.
Several long minutes pass, during which Harry manages to forget the general awkwardness of the situation and finish his breakfast. Only then Hermione clears her throat a bit, alerting Harry to the sound of approaching feet.
"More pumpkin juice?" Ron asks, completely oblivious.
Hermione looks at him as if he's grown another head.
"Harry? May I sit?"
Hermione's eyes are wide as saucers as she stares at Timothy. Her heart rate is elevated. It makes Harry wonder whether she ever considers dropping Ron and going for someone else. Granted, Timothy is likely not the best choice, for a girl.
"I don't mind," Harry says, but he doesn't turn toward their new guest. He's tempted to leave immediately, actually, but refrains.
"Harry, I really didn't mean it how it sounded this morning," Tim says, and when Harry says nothing, the bloke puts a gentle hand on Harry's shoulder. "I was…not so much shocked as surprised. I hadn't realised…well, anything that you told me this morning. I hadn't known any of it… Please, Harry," the last whispered.
Harry is embarrassed that this is going on before Hermione and Ron. And Ron is getting jealous. And Hermione is entirely too fascinated by Tim. "Tim, do you know Ron and Hermione?" Harry asks, because otherwise the situation would only continue to spiral into disaster.
"Er, by reputation, certainly," Tim says, but he offers his hand to Ron, who sort of looks at it for a few moments before taking it, glaring into Tim's eyes and both of them likely muscling their way through the entire thing. Harry sighs quietly. "You're quite the team captain," Tim says and sounds sincere enough, Harry thinks. Ron must agree with Harry's assessment, since he lets Tim's hand go.
Then Tim reaches across to shake hands with Hermione, whose cheeks are just ever-so-slightly coloured with her arousal. It's mild, though—she simply finds Tim attractive. She used to have the same reaction to Harry all the time, though she seems to have got over that. "Head Girl," Tim says with a smile.
"Er, right, yes," Hermione agrees, slightly embarrassed, now.
"So when did you meet our friend Harry?" asks Ron, and he is back to threatening.
"Er…yesterday…?" says Tim, who seems not entirely certain coming over here was a good idea. It's very Hufflepuff of him, to be so meek and unthreatening. They're always so nice.
"I went over to Hufflepuff and asked if there were any available queer blokes, because I needed to get laid," Harry explains with a hair of annoyance.
"Well why'd you have to go and pick up some random—"
"Oh that's simply too much, Ron!" Hermione explodes, slamming the table with her hand as she stands. She grabs her things and stalks off.
Ron sits there, mouth agape, for several moments.
"Aren't you going to follow her?" Harry asks, surprised that Ron is not already gone.
Another several moments pass before Ron's mouth snaps shut. Another several and he takes a breath to speak. "I suppose we just broke up," he says.
Harry blinks. "What?"
Ron shrugs kind of noncommittally, then rubs his hands on his robes, as if they're sweating.
"Did you want to break up??" Harry is simply staggered. He has no idea what’s suddenly happened to the world.
"Well, it's hardly fair to her is it? That I'm in love with you."
Harry is gaping, he can feel the air in his mouth. "You're not in bleeding love with me!" Harry hisses once he gets his motor control back. "You're merely…curious…or something. And it's not fair to me, either, is it? To make me the cause of your break-up?"
"You're not the cause, Harry," Ron says, suddenly worried.
But Harry, equally suddenly, recalls that he has a guest. He turns to Timothy, who is sitting very, very quietly beside him and pretending not to hear this conversation. Because he's that nice. "Timothy, I'm sorry I got angry this morning, all right? It had very little to do with you." He lowers his voice to a whisper only Timothy can hear and is certain to capture the other boy's eyes. He hopes his own aren't too unsettling, but Timothy doesn't seem more nervous now than he'd been before. "You see how my life is falling apart, yeah?" He waits for Timothy's little nod. "I had a brilliant time with you last evening. And this morning. You're lovely, and a fabulous lay."
Timothy's eyes go a little bit watery, just a bit sad around the edges.
Harry thinks he knows what the problem is. "I'd like to get to know you better?" he offers. "It's a shame we're so close to the summer hols."
"And you're about to Leave," Timothy realises. He eyes are searching Harry's lips, and Harry has a fleeting thought, wondering whether he has influenced this boy, just a little bit. But most likely, it is simply the fact that there are so few queer blokes, it's difficult not to want to attach yourself to the first you find. Timothy sighs. "You're not angry?"
"I'm absolutely, most definitely, not angry with you," and he seals his assurance with a kiss that is entirely too perfect for the Great Hall. He asserts quite a lot of control in order to pull away again. "Hmm…likely not very well thought out," Harry murmurs.
But Timothy is smiling languidly, eyes half-mast, and he seems entirely at ease now when he gets up from the table and moves back toward Hufflepuff.
It is obvious to Harry how jealous Ron is, having witnessed this latest; but to Ron's credit, he is controlling himself. "Look, we've already had this discussion. I don't want to come between you and Hermione."
"I wish you wouldn't fret over it, Harry. We're not engaged. It was never that serious."
Harry simply cannot understand that it wasn’t 'that serious'. "Well, it seemed very serious to me."
Ron shrugs. "I love her. I love you. We're all best friends. That doesn't mean we should all be sleeping together."
"Well, it seems to be what you want," Harry blurts.
Ron takes a moment, then smirks. "It's a fair cop," he says.
Harry groans.
"I know it sounds base, Harry," Ron whispers, "but can't you at least give us a go?"
"Oh bloody hell," Harry murmurs with great feeling.
"Please? I want you so badly I can hardly bear it!" even more softly whispered than before.
"Bloody straight blokes and their bloody bi-curiosity," Harry mutters.
"Well, what if it is, then?" Ron asks reasonably. "Do this for me, and I'll leave off whinging."
Harry gets up and stalks out of the Great Hall. This time, Ron does not waste time gaping, but follows him immediately. Harry wonders, briefly, what the remainder of the students think is going on. He wonders what his own plan is.
* * *
Harry's room is familiar, but takes on an entirely new feeling when Ron enters this time. It’s as if all of his senses have been heightened in his anticipation. He feels the wards slam into place behind him and realises that they are very strong. Harry's power is nearly palpable in the room. "You are bloody fucking insane!" Harry shouts in Ron's general direction.
Ron is not, however, overly concerned. He's wanted this so badly, for so long, he can barely keep it together. His prick is a bar of pulsating hot iron down his left pants-leg. He should have worn briefs, or the longer boxers, since the head of his prick has now snaked its way past his boxers and into his trousers. It's less than comfortable and not at all dignified. "I'm no worse than any of the other blokes here."
"Most of them aren't in love with me."
"Most of them are less queer than I am, I'd wager," he says, and it feels very strange indeed, owning it that way.
"You are not queer," Harry dismisses, "unless you mean in the sense that you're a fucking queer duck. What is wrong with you, Ron??"
"What, you're the only one allowed to be bisexual, now?" Ron asks with an eye roll. It's ridiculous, the way Harry is carrying on. It's as if Harry's entire worldview is resting on Ron's sexual orientation, and it's about to be turned on its head. "I'm so fucking attracted to you, Harry, and it really doesn't bother me at all."
Harry is gaping and staring helplessly at him, with those black-within-black eyes. It's strange, that he can look so lost and so…evil at the same time. Ron finds it quite sexy, but at this point, he would likely find Harry's left pinkie toe sexy. Hm…that would be a nice theory to test—
"Relax, Harry. It's not such a big deal as all that," Ron says softly, nearing slowly the skittish animal Harry has become. "Nothing's changed. I've wanted you all year, haven't I?"
"Bu—and fifth year—and Herm…"
Even hearing her name does not quell the ardour within him. He loves Hermione, really, but…. Well, she's not Harry, is she? And besides, she's…not Harry. That justification did not work so well. "I know I'm not so pretty as all those other blokes you throw yourself at," Ron whispers, because Harry is right there, now, those eyes searching Ron's, Harry's upturned face in the cradle of Ron's hands. He can feel the fluttering of Harry's pulse in his own right pinkie finger, which rests against the large vein in Harry's neck. Harry's skin is warm and smooth and just slightly moist. Depilatory, Ron thinks, before his lips meet Harry's, and he is rapidly losing himself to lust.
Harry pulls himself away, his own hands on Ron's face now and trembling, just slightly. "If we do this," Harry says, "I need to know it's not my fault, Ron."
"Of course, not," Ron says, though he has no idea what Harry is talking about. And who cares anyway? There's no fault for fucking.
"That you and Hermione broke up, Ron. It's not my fault, is it?"
Oh, that. "I'm not even certain we've broken it off, Harry."
Harry's jaw drops open. "But, we can't do this, then!" he exclaims.
And Ron realises his mistake. Bloody fucking hell! "No, Harry…. I mean, yes, we can. Please. This has nothing to do with her." I'm whinging. I'm a fucking whinger. "Please, please, Harry," Ron is murmuring, pulling Harry close again, kissing Harry's forehead, down the side of his face. Back to a single, perfectly shaped ear. "I need you, Harry…I need to taste you," he's panting in Harry's ear. He hopes it sounds sexy, instead of simply desperate. He thinks it's working, though, because Harry is clamping claw-like hands round Ron's forearms and is gasping as loudly as Ron is. "Please let me have this."
Harry's whimper is simply the most delicious thing Ron has ever heard. At least, in recent memory. And granted, he can't recall a single thing outside of this room just now. Outside of Harry. Outside of Harry's hot, wet mouth and demanding tongue. Outside of the feel of Harry's smooth chest beneath the calluses of Ron's fingers. And there, the centre of Harry's want, slick and solid and heavy in Ron's hand. He drinks the moan and thinks it ambrosia. He is only peripherally aware that his own clothes are peeling from his body, as he is almost entirely distracted by the breathlessness of Harry's vast power pressing against Ron's skin—trying to crawl inside of him. It's both terrifying and arousing. Altogether exhilarating.
Ron moves them toward the bed, and once Harry is down, Ron crawls atop, only then realising that they are both naked. It is with both great reverence and inexplicable teenaged rebellion that he presses himself into the body below and rubs skin against skin. It's a jolt when he feels metal against his own nipple, and realises it is Harry's jewellery. "When did you get this?" Ron blurts and regrets it almost instantly.
Luckily, Harry is already too far gone. "Shut it, Ron," he murmurs and pulls their lips together again. Ron's relief knows no bounds. It helps him to relax into the moment. And what a moment it is. I'm going to fuck Harry Potter, Ron thinks, and nearly squeaks when Harry's hand wraps itself around Ron's prick. "Were you planning on fucking me today? Or would you prefer the frottage and oral sex?" and despite the irreverence and smart-arsed attitude, Harry sounds overcome—as if he can barely speak at all.
"Inside…" Ron murmurs. "Inside the warm-wet heart of you."
"Lubricoleo," Harry murmurs and pulls his legs up, up. "Do it," he whispers, then.
Ron feels the pull toward Harry's centre like the draw of a black hole. He cannot resist and is certain to be crushed by the reality of it. And once he is pressing at the tiny, puckered opening, he can no longer watch. His eyes are drawn to Harry's and remain there, wide and staring, into the midnight pools that drown him. "Oh Merlin," Ron whimpers.
"Fuck me, Ron," Harry whispers.
Ron fucks him. And fucks him. And he cannot look away until Harry's eyes close, and Harry's hand begins to masturbate. And then Ron is locked there, until Harry's eyes, once again, open, and draw him in.
Harry's orgasm is like a grand exhalation. Harry's mouth opens and sound rushes from it, like a sigh. But far stranger is the way Harry's power pours out of him in a wave, only to come crashing back again moments later, making Ron's hair stand on end. It is…most disquieting.
It is not, however, so disquieting that Ron cannot pick up his pace again and piston himself to his own climax, wherein he pours his own essence into Harry, though that is a far more mundane process. He can barely contain the bliss of it, but…
Well, there's not much time to think on it before he falls into sleep.
Patience by colibri
Chapter 12: Patience
Harry can feel Ron drifting off, but doesn't bother stopping him. It's Friday, and Harry's life is falling apart—he really can't be arsed to attend any of his classes, and he certainly can't bring himself to care about Ron skiving off. He feels the slightest twinge toward attending Potions this afternoon, but…well, he'll see. It's morning, still. It's morning, and already the day is ruined. And how in Merlin's name could Ron possibly turn out to be such a passable fuck? A gay sex virgin! Harry groans and gets a jolt when Ron turns toward him and snuggles closer. He really is asleep.
Bloody hell, Harry thinks and simply resigns himself. He's not going to be Ron's boyfriend. No matter what Ron thinks, this is nothing more than a phase and a little crush on Ron's part. He is not 'in love' with Harry. He is infatuated and open-minded. Harry is thrilled, but now, the silliness needs to end. If Ron doesn't regret what he's done when he awakens, that's brilliant; but for now, Harry must prepare himself for the likelihood that Ron will regret it.
Suddenly, the frustration boils over and Harry gets out of bed and stalks to the loo. Only—
"Harry?" Ron mumbles, turning and opening his eyes slightly, only to squint, despite the only light in the room being from an oil lamp Harry has recently acquired, so that he needn't use magic for everything. It's amusing, actually, that it took him so very many months to decide a lamp would be useful.
But that is neither here nor there. He stops and turns to face Ron, crossing his arms against his chest defensively. He is most certainly ready for the guilt.
"Why are you out of bed?" Ron asks, a smile stretching his mouth into shy beauty.
"I needed to use the toilet," Harry lies.
Ron's smile becomes a wicked grin. "You won't be too long, will you?"
"Ron, don't you have classes to attend?"
"I think we should take a walk, Harry," Ron says, ignoring Harry's question entirely. "Round the lake, about the grounds. Outside. Together."
"Haven't you a class to attend?" Harry reminds.
"Spend this time with me, Harry. We won't see each other at all next year, not with me taking the Ministry position and you so obviously not."
"I may," Harry says with a frown, though he's not even, to be honest, read the letter through, yet. He'd been so much more focussed on the wedding than on anything work-related. Especially since he'd found out he needn't work at all. Some time off, he'd thought, might have been in order. Now he's trying not to think.
Ron rolls out of bed and takes the two large strides over to Harry. He's not a bad-looking bloke, really. Quite handsome, in his own way. And from the neck down…unbelievable. Harry feels doubly guilty for finding fault with his friend and yet not finding enough. "Harry, luv," Ron says, all cajoling-like, as if Harry is merely prudish or some such. "Walk with me, Harry?" and he rests gentle hands on Harry's hips and sidles closer. His skin is hot and smooth beneath the gingery-blonde hair on his arms and legs. And…elsewhere.
Harry's temptation is rather plainly evidenced. "You're not my boyfriend, you know," Harry says petulantly, as if they'd been fighting about it.
"Let's not speak of it, shall we?" says Ron, taking a step back but pretending to nonchalance. "Walk with me, Harry Potter, for I am on the threshold of a menial position in Wizardom's oldest bureaucracy. It shall leech the very youth from my nubile flesh."
"Nubile, eh?" Harry comments, surprised Ron knows the word. But he supposes if he knows it, Ron should as well. They've mostly grown up together.
"You disagree?" Ron asks with mock surprise, then comes in again and leans down to cover Harry's mouth with his own. Ron kisses him to within a breath of his life. Or something to that effect. "Harry Potter," Ron says again, his lips smiling, his eyes laughing. And how did his prick end up in Harry's hand?
Harry decides that thinking about such things just now would be a bit wasteful, and so gives in, and revels in the cold, hard wall beating at his spine as Ron confirms that he is easily up to the task of carrying Harry and fucking him as well.
For History's Sake by colibri
Chapter 13: For History's Sake
Harry can't believe he's doing this. It's wrong on so many levels, he's not even enjoying it. He can't understand how Ron can be so very pleased. And he is, because Harry can scent it easily on the breeze. Shouldn't these feelings be mutual?
"—So I thought I'd either take a single room with an en suite, or go for the sub-lease. It's a two-storey in London proper. Row home, you know?"
And Ron has been holding his hand ever since they touched down outside, because Harry had insisted on a glider to slip them out faster. And Harry is far too mystified to refuse him. Frankly, he likes that Ron is so enamoured, even if it's unsettling and unexpected and…well…yes. And his body is still pumping endorphins into his bloodstream from the stellar fuck, (which Harry still finds wrong--that Ron can be so good with so little practise). "Yeah," Harry says.
"Oh, Harry! One last time—for history's sake?"
Harry blinks helplessly at the looming trees and thinks it simply unfathomable, that his life has come to this. "One last time what?"
"The Forbidden Forest, Harry! It's been forever since we've been together…and we used to go every year."
"Horrible things happened every time, if memory serves," Harry mumbles. He's not overly fond of the idea.
Ron thinks on it for a few moments, then cocks his head to the side and nods thoughtfully. "That is, essentially, true," he agrees. "Perhaps we should refrain then—for history's sake."
Harry has to snort. It's funny. "For the future's sake," he adds.
Only then the point is mooted, for they hear screams, and Ron is already sprinting headlong into the forest. And then Harry realises that things have changed. That he can help this time—really. And so he condenses a glider and easily catches Ron up. "Where did it come from?" he asks hushed after bringing Ron onto the glider as well, slowing so as not to be drowned out by the wind. And, well, because he doesn't know where to go.
Ron shakes his head in frustration. "We might have to split up, Harry—"
"Absolutely not," Harry says and slows them to a stop before dissipating the glider again. Harry transforms into his wolf, (for though his senses even in human form are keener than most, they are far keener in lupine form), and he begins to scent for human—human he doesn't know or, at least, human that isn't Ron. And there—faintly. He follows the trail deeper into the forest, peripherally aware that Ron is close behind. They remain on the path, and Harry hopes….
"Do you recognize who they are?" Ron asks and Harry provides one of his terribly awkward head-shakes, hoping it looks negative enough. There is only a vague familiarity to the scent.
And then, as luck would have it, another scream rips through the forest, and it is now audibly two screams. Simultaneously. And Harry shifts into human form, then has both himself and Ron on a glider and racing toward the sound in mere seconds.
"Children in the forest," Harry mutters.
"I'd thought us the last idiots to wander about in here," Ron says good-naturedly, though his scent betrays his fear.
"It was hardly on purpose, most of the time," Harry offers lamely. Then looks forward at Ron's gasp, stopping them. And Harry notes that it is dark, now—very dark—despite the fact that it's only early afternoon. The trees have grown so close as to block out the sun, but Harry's eyes are so strong in the dark, he'd not noticed.
"Fuck," Ron whispers weakly, and Harry knows why.
"Acromantulas," he says. There is still nothing Ron fears more than spiders, excepting, of course, a giant, furry, intelligent spider with huge pincers, deadly venom, and the temper of…well, a werewolf—without the Wolfsbane. These monsters are easily ten to twelve feet from toe to toe and their fur is black as death. They have eight legs, like their tiny cousins, and eight sinister-looking eyes. Their pincers are clicking slowly now as they go about their business. Harry has a sneaking suspicion that Ron would rather battle Death Eaters any day than an acromantula. Unfortunately, they are not here as natural historians. In fact, the reason for their presence is now painfully obvious.
"Are they dead, Harry?" Ron asks, his voice trembling slightly.
The children are both covered toes to chin in webbing, and both have their mouths covered with the stuff as well. Harry can't even recognise them; though, to be fair, he doesn't know so many people, now. "I don’t think so," Harry responds, because he thinks he can hear their hearts beating. He hopes. And although it doesn't seem the acromantulas, (for there are three, at least), are readying themselves for a feast, he is glad he and Ron appeared now, as the feast would most certainly have commenced sooner or later.
"We need to cut them free," Ron mutters, coming to the problem at hand. He palms his wand and focuses intently on the children. "Diffindo?"
Harry shrugs. "Should work. Shall I catch them once you've cut them free?"
"Yeah—but I'm concerned…."
Harry can see where this is going. He nods, "If the acromantulas think we're stealing their supper—which we are—they might try to stop us."
"Or worse," Ron breathes, "they might attack the children."
"Diversion," Harry blurts, then, and decides it's all right. "I'll distract them, you get the children?"
Ron is already nodding. "All right," and he lands on his feet when Harry dissipates the glider without warning. It's a shame, because the easiest thing to do would be to cast fire. But in the forest, that idea is right out. He runs into the clearing, ignoring the scratches and jabs he gets from overzealous tree branches and various and sundry other…things. It is a relief that he can see so perfectly well, because otherwise he might have run straight into one of the beasts; but now, he does not. "I beg your pardon," he offers, "but I believe you lot have borrowed a pair of Hogwarts children without permission?"
And dear Merlin, how the voice that comes makes Harry's skin shrivel to goose-flesh. "Another human," it hisses, "trespasses in our forest—" for, of course, it has no vocal cords.
Harry does not think about acromantula anatomy just now. He is too busy trying not to faint from terror. He is breathing carefully and attempting to slow his heart, this despite the fact that he knows he could kill the lot of them with a thought. Or, well, a few thoughts. It's a bit of a moral dilemma, really, as the beasts are correct, and because they are intelligent creatures who, unlike werewolves, have decided to follow their forebears' example and not actively hunt humans, (out of respect for Hagrid). It is only these silly children's straying that has put them in this…bind. The anger and pun aid his efforts at calming himself.
"I've only come," Harry offers, "to retrieve the children. They are sorely missed." Better, very little tremor in his voice now. It improves his confidence.
"Plump and fleshy humans," hisses another voice, this one different from the first, "have come to us. They are meat, now."
All right, we can do this, Harry thinks, and when next he speaks, he sounds grim and authoritative. "I'm sorry, but I must insist that the children be returned to us immediately.” He registers movement even before he has finished speaking and reacts, throwing up a shield. The smallest of the beasts bounces from it, and Harry summons an armful of leaf litter, which he then transfigures into metal pellets and magically hurls, one at a time, at the acromantulas, fast enough to hurt, but not to pierce their tough, furry hides.
It has the desired effect, Harry decides with a sinking stomach, and all of the huge spiders turn their attention to neutralising him. He condenses a glider and takes off through the trees, though not so quickly they can't keep up. And as he flees, he thinks it may have been easier to simply erect a shield about them whilst Ron took the children. He groans and halts, turning to face his pursuers, and pulls magic from the world about him. He gasps with pain—it seems almost to sear his skin—but he manages, and conjures a glass dome large enough to enclose all three of the acromantulas. They bang to a halt as the lead beast is stopped by the glass and the remainder are stopped by the first.
Harry is panting; he is dizzy. He hopes Ron has got the children already. He doesn't think he can stand any longer.
Harry is sinking to the ground, his knees cushioned by decaying leaf litter and the soil it is becoming.
Harry wonders how long his dome will last, then loses consciousness.
Is this home or what? by colibri
Chapter 14. Is this home or what?
Harry awakens and looks about. He wonders why he is dressed, then realises that he is in the hospital wing, and the hospital wing is not home—no matter how often he wakes up here.
This time, however, Harry is not the only patient. There are two children to his right, each sleeping peacefully in a tautly-tucked bed. He does not recognise them, but their scents are familiar. They are the children he and Ron rescued.
Which brings him to Ron, who is sitting up in his chair now, and leaning over to take one of Harry's hands. He smiles a little wryly, and bends in to kiss Harry, gently, on the forehead. "All right, mate?" he asks in a whisper.
"Of course," Harry whispers back and is tired. Ron is not his boyfriend. Harry misses Draco already. He feels pathetic, but there it is. "How long have I been here this time?"
"Nearly two hours," Ron replies. "You exhausted yourself with that dome. I'd thought it was just transfigured trees at first, but then I realised. It explained why you'd gone unconscious."
"Bugger," Harry mutters. He'd not even thought of transfiguring trees at the time—had simply conjured instead. "This has reminded me why I would make a terrible auror," he decides. "I need to get out of here."
"Well, I doubt you're well enough to stand, yet," Ron says almost apologetically.
"Nonsense," Harry mutters, then attempts to sit and fails rather spectacularly. He's too exhausted to even blush. "Bugger," Harry repeats, because the sentiment is even more heartfelt this time.
"No worries, Harry," Ron murmurs gently, with a fond little smile and that glint of…whatever it is in his eyes. "A few more hours and you'll be right as rain."
"How long did that dome last, then?" Harry wonders aloud, since it took that much out of him.
"Dunno, really," Ron admits. "I got you and the children out of there as quickly as I could do. I think the Headmaster went back to assure that the acromantulas wouldn't suffocate inside the dome, in case it didn't dissipate quickly enough."
Suffocate. Harry takes a deep breath, then lets it out. He's glad, really, because he'd been trying not to hurt them. "This has been the longest day ever," he decides and says morosely.
"We could make the time pass," Ron offers, much to Harry's shock.
"Er…children present."
"They're in a forced sleep during their recovery," Ron says, though still quietly. Harry realises it must be to avoid alerting Madam Pomfrey, not to avoid bothering the children.
"Still," Harry says with a frown.
"Oh luv, don't worry so," Ron dismisses and leans in to take a kiss. His hand slips behind Harry's head and Harry is peripherally aware that Ron has gone to his knees beside the bed. And it feels so nice, really it does, but it's simply not quite what he most desires. Because that would be Draco; and he feels just a bit disgusted with himself, that he's unable to sit, yet his prick is perking quite efficiently and his skin is flushing.
That being the case, it's rather impressive that Harry manages to push Ron away—yes, weakly, and yes, not very far—and mumble something about not doing this here or now or some such. Only when he looks past Ron's head, he notices that they're not alone, and his stomach crashes to the floor. "Draco!" he blurts, and knows he must look so guilty, because that's how he feels. And really, he thinks it justified that Draco looks very angry, and a little bit betrayed, even though they'd broken up again. Still, when Draco backs away to leave, Harry tries to sit again, and fails again. "Please, don't go!" Harry says but it is too late, now. Draco is gone out the door.
And now it is Ron who looks betrayed. "What do you want him for, after everything??" He is rapidly moving past betrayed into livid.
"It has nothing to do with you, Ron," Harry hisses, so frustrated that he's unable to get out of bed. "I love him—"
"And you don't love me? When he's been nothing but a conniving ferret, and I'm your best friend?? It's all about looks for you, isn't it! You are so bloody shallow, Potter! And you're not even such a prize! Perhaps you should get a bit of motion in, now and again, so you wouldn't be such a fucking twig."
Harry is gaping, not because Ron isn't right about him needing exercise and being a bit too skinny; but because Ron has said it, when he is obviously desperately in lust with Harry, and has been fighting for Harry for months.
"I must insist that you both keep your voices down, gentlemen," comes Madam Pomfrey's stern voice from the doorway to her offices. "This is the hospital wing."
"I was just leaving," Ron says with a final glare toward Harry, then exits at a trot.
Harry groans.
"Well, Mr Potter. It appears that you'll finally get some time alone to recover. I suggest you sleep."
Harry is frustrated, and although he is certain he will not be able to sleep for it, he does close his eyes and decides to make a valiant attempt.
Harry Potter does success very well.
Persuasion by colibri
Chapter 15: Persuasion
With no interruptions, Harry sleeps straight through to 5 o’clock Saturday morning. It's the 13th of June, and Harry rolls out of the bed knowing exactly where he is. He is in lupine form by the time he touches the floor, and is standing before Draco's Head Boy rooms before he has realized he was going there. Without showering first. Or even cleaning his teeth. "Stupid," he mutters to himself, then performs various cleaning charms on his person and his clothing. Still, jeans and a t-shirt—not the very most impressive thing he could wear. "Why am I doing this?" he wonders aloud, but then he knocks and waits.
And waits.
And then he knocks again. And he wonders whether Draco is even there, and then hears a heart beating inside. No, two hearts beating. Now his own is throwing itself against the walls of his chest. He desperately does not wish to know who is warming Draco's bed, nor for how long they have been doing so. He transforms, once again, into the wolf, and returns, stealthily, to his own rooms.
He paces for a few minutes, then decides to shower. And whilst he performs that ritual, the heat melting the stressy deposits left by this last…bit, he holds an internal conversation. I need to apologise to Draco, says the one Harry. But why? I did nothing wrong, says the other. But I kind of did—I let Ron fuck me, says the first. But Draco wanted to see me in pain. So I broke it off. There is no monogamy when there is no relationship.
But then he’s made his decision. I need to apologise. Because he wants Draco back, though he knows not why. He simply does.
He sits at the writing table and finds forth scroll, quill, ink. He spends several moments composing his thoughts, deciding where to begin. And then he writes. There is only so much he can do, when he understands nothing of this, really. He banishes the note, giving it instructions to deliver itself to Draco—preferably by sliding under the door, but if that doesn't work, it shall fasten itself to the door and ward itself to be removed by Draco's hand alone.
Harry dresses, then, and heads to the Quidditch pitch, where he flies about on a broom for two hours, exercising and brooding. They are interesting bedfellows.
* * *
Brunch is, as usual, a low-key affair. There have been festivities, now that all of the exams have been taken, and many have not yet recovered enough to add food to their roiling bellies. Harry sits in his customary place and since neither Ron nor Hermione are present, his discomfort is his alone. Colin smiles at him and wishes him a good morning before going to sit with his usual group, and Ginny has even asked him to join them, though he graciously refused, claiming he needed to think, which was entirely true. Harry is thinking, though not very productively, and eating, though not very much. And then Hermione walks in, and Harry wants to crawl under the table. He'd honestly thought if she'd not shown up already, she wasn't coming.
But here she is, and much to his shock, she sits down across from him, her back to the remainder of the room, and looks him straight in the eye. "Good morning, Harry," she says, though there is no hint of a smile.
"Good morning, Hermione," Harry replies and wishes he didn't feel so guilty, when really, he hadn't even wanted Ron that much.
"Alone already?" she asks, not even pretending to be here to eat breakfast.
"Already?" Harry asks. He can feel himself becoming annoyed, though most of him believes it is Hermione's right to be angry.
"You only took him from me yesterday!" she hisses.
"I didn't take him from you," Harry murmurs, trying to remain calm and not alert everyone else at the table to what is occurring. "You were angry and left in a huff. He decided you'd broken it off or something."
"Of course! Because it's all my fault!"
With that exclamation, Harry puts up a privacy bubble around them and covers his painfully flushing face with his hands. It's not dignified, having those discomfiting black eyes and a red face.
"Did you just shield us?" she asks, startled.
"Yes. I realise you may have wished for the entire Hall to hear us, but I do not."
"…Oh."
And now that Harry has regained his composure, he takes a deep breath and looks up again. "It's not your fault," Harry says, "however, I do not think that I'm to blame either. I've told Ron for months that I'm not interested in being with him. I've told him that he's not interested. I've brushed off all of his advances to the best of my ability. But honestly, 'Mione—I'm only a bloke. It's very difficult to not take sex when it's pinning you against a wall."
"Oh Jesus Christ," Hermione groans and drops her head into her hands, shaking it. "I can't imagine why I'm surprised that you would use such language."
"That was hardly foul language," Harry blurts in his confusion.
"Not foul, Harry. Evocative. Regardless, you're correct, of course. Completely correct. It's not your fault. And it's not mine. And I suppose it isn't even Ron's really." A great, put-upon sigh and she shakes her head again, then raises it to look up at Harry. Her eyes look a bit bleary round the edges. She's likely not slept well.
"So we were a bit intimate yesterday, but I didn't want him as my boyfriend—I don't. And I told him, but I don't think he believed me. Draco walked in as Ron was kissing me. I just about died. And Ron got so jealous and angry. He left in a huff. I haven't seen him since."
"Draco?" Hermione asks, stuck there, apparently.
And as if summoned, Draco walks in just then, all shining beauty and gorgeous glory. He is surrounded by his nasty Slytherin cronies, who seem to have decided he is royalty once more, now that he has snubbed Harry. "I want him back," Harry seethes, and his fingers itch.
"But Harry, why?" and Hermione truly sounds at a loss. "He was terrible to you."
"No he wasn't. He was selfish, but most of the time, he was quite decent to me. And I know he loves me as well. I know it." That 'L' word, it's getting easier, Harry decides, though he still prefers not to think about it too seriously. Draco doesn't even look in his direction—simply moves to the Slytherin tables and takes his preferred seat. The others arrange themselves about him like ornaments. Ugly ornaments. "Besides, I think we're fated for each other. We've gone from a feuding animosity of mythic proportions to lovers. It's too poetical to be anything but perfect." And he adds a smirk to show Hermione that he knows he's being ridiculous; that there's nothing about the two of them that is 'perfect' together, except the sex. Still, he feels so safe with Draco. That was the very reason he had felt so betrayed by what Draco had done. Why hadn't Draco simply asked him?
"I can't imagine, Harry. Really, I can't, though he can be charming, and he does seem to take good care of you most of the time." She is shaking her head, though she also seems resigned. "He appears less than overly interested in making it up with you, however."
"Of course he does," Harry agrees, staring across the room at Draco, who still does not meet his eyes. He is busy holding court, of course. "He's going to force me to beg to get him back. I hurt him. I think he'd come to apologise again yesterday when he saw me and Ron in the hospital wing." Harry can almost feel the truth of it, he is so certain. It all fits too well. "I'm going to go and speak with him."
"Perhaps not in the Great Hall?" Hermione offers worriedly.
"Why not?" There aren't any professors here this morning, and besides, "Draco adores a scene. If it doesn't cause a furore, it's not worth doing, is it?" Another wry smile and he is standing.
"Oh Harry," Hermione says helplessly, but then takes another grand sigh. "Good luck, then."
"Thanks!" Harry beams and dissipates the privacy shield. He has worn his pretty, black robes today, in the hopes he would amass the nerve to confront Draco. He straightens them now and glides, as gracefully as possible, over to the Slytherin tables. Most of them attempt to ignore him, but he can smell the fear. He stands directly behind Blaise, who sits directly before Draco. "Good morning, Draco," Harry says.
Draco looks up at him, though he needn't look very far up at all, what with the distance and their relative height. He looks very bored. "Potty—is there no way to be rid of you?"
Harry is expecting this, though not the deliberate use of the Dark Lord’s nickname for him. But Harry can take a bit of abuse. Draco let him go through the transformation, after all, and Harry’s been tortured by the best. "I'm certain there is," Harry says cheerfully, "but many more determined than you have failed."
Someone behind Harry chuckles and someone else shushes them urgently. So, the Ravenclaws are attempting to feign disinterest. They should realise no one would believe that.
"Well, then," says Draco. "I suppose we'll simply have to wait for the Ministry to realise you've gone barmy and send you off. Shouldn't take long, now that you're no longer hiding the…unsavoury side of your character."
Ohhhhh! Draco knows bloody well that Harry has done everything to push the side of Light. Harry has even redeemed Lucius Malfoy in the eyes of the law and Wizarding society. Calm yourself, Harry. He does know, and he knows exactly how sensitive you are about it. "I suppose they can try," Harry says and tries to keep his smile from growing teeth. He moves a bit closer, which puts him directly behind Blaise, then rests his hands on the other boy's shoulders.
"Oi! Get your hands off—"
But Harry grows sharp claws, which he digs into Blaise's shoulders, silencing the protests instantly. "Sorry, what?" Harry asks.
Blaise squeaks a bit, before he manages, "Nothing."
"I'd rather decided I no longer wished to be so very nasty," Harry says, still speaking directly to Draco, who scents not of fear, but determination. "I'd rather be a nice bloke."
"What's stopping you, Potter?"
"It's all for love of you, Draco. I simply can't bear to be without you. I've decided. Despite your despicable ruthlessness, which, of course, I share, and your underhanded selfishness, which I do not."
"Love?" Draco sneers. "But I suppose you love every bloke who's ever fucked you, yes? And where is that new toy of yours? That ginger twat, the Weasel? Where is your latest acquisition?" Yes, most certainly jealous.
"No clue, really," Harry says airily, though it galls him that Draco could speak of Ron so. Draco is lashing out, just as Ron had done to Harry in the Hospital Wing yesterday. "He was a bit irked when I pushed him away yesterday. But I was so desperate to see you again, and he kept insisting I was daft for it. And then there you were, and I couldn't even sit up. I haven't seen him since he left in a huff."
Draco blinks, then chuckles just a little, though it's very forced. He's obviously uncertain what to say to all of this. Harry wonders whether he's even read the letter. Everyone is staring at Draco now, though. "And I'm supposed to take you back, after you let that cretin touch you?"
"Whether he touched me or not has no bearing. Far worse have, after all. If I recall correctly, even those two oafs, Crabbe and Goyle have fucked me."
"Vince and Greg?" gasps that Parkinson whore—Merlin is she ugly—under her breath to Draco, who is extremely annoyed when she lays a hand on his arm in her shock.
"Senior, you stupid cow," Draco hisses at her.
"I so wish you wouldn't keep fucking her whenever we break it off," Harry says and he means it wholeheartedly, though he'd not actually meant to say it aloud. "She's really not worthy of you." It makes you look desperate.
It should not shock him but for some reason does, that Pansy becomes livid. She takes to her feet, her wand drawn, and Harry is nearly too shocked to react. Only then he does, and even he realises it's not very nice to laugh at someone when they're threatening you and obviously very upset. It's stifling his laughter that proves difficult. But, since he's not actually stupid, he wordlessly summons, then catches her wand and meets her eyes. "This really has nothing to do with you," he says, once he has managed to stifle his hilarity again.
Her mouth is gaping and it is even more unattractive than her habitual mien. "Give back my wand this instant you…you son of a mudblood whore!"
The Great Hall is silent. Harry can hear a cacophony of hearts beating in the stillness, but not a breath. For several long moments. And part of him is silent as well, waiting for what will happen next—as if he is not the actor everyone is waiting for.
Another part of Harry, however, thinks, What the hell is she prattling on about? for though he knows that his mother was muggle-born, it is hardly something he thinks about…well…ever, really. Add to that the fact that he never thinks of muggle-born wizards and witches as 'mudbloods'. Even Draco hasn't used the word—in front of him, anyway—in so long. He's rather forgotten about it, and though it sounds offensive, it also sounds a bit…quaint.
Besides, Parkinson is really too low to be considered a sow. She is so unfortunately ugly, really, it's pathological. "Oh, sorry—I thought you were threatening me with it," Harry says, and breathing resumes, somewhat. He holds up her wand between his two index fingers, then makes a show of transfiguring it, pushing the two ends slowly together, until he is left with only a wooden disc about two centimetres in diameter. He wards it, then, so that a simple Finite Incantatem will not work to restore it, and flips it to its owner as if it were a coin. "There you are," he says with a fake smile. "Now, if you'll kindly keep out of my conversation?" and he returns his gaze to Draco, who is obviously annoyed, but also amused. "Draco, please say you'll give us another chance?"
"Bloody Potter," Draco mutters, but Harry can already tell he's won. Draco is a real pansy for power and nastiness and, of course, Harry. One mustn't forget that. And no matter how much he protests that he likes that Harry is a bloke, he also loves Harry in anything resembling a gown.
"Do you remember when you used to call me 'Saint Potter'?"
"Yeah," Draco says, colouring slightly and shaking his head a little. "Not much danger of that now, is there?"
"Well I'm hardly evil," Harry says with a frown, but he's not really upset, and Draco knows it.
"There's quite a lot of grey between demon and saint, Harry." Draco stands, though, and says, "Well, I'm certain you don't think it's your arguments that convinced me." And then, whispered, though the surrounding Slytherins can certainly hear, "I think you might need to provide a bit of that famous Potter tail, to remind me why I shouldn't take a wife."
Harry's smile is somewhat dreamy, and he forms a glider beneath himself whilst levitating Draco until they can stand together, then takes them both back to Harry's rooms. He finds he'd like to spend quite a long while, indeed, reminding Draco.
Marks by colibri
Chapter 16: Marks
On Monday, Harry has his remaining NEWTs. It's gruelling, but it's the last possible day to sit them, and so Harry does. He begins the morning with his written DADA, which is not as easy as the practical would have been had he been in his right mind, but easy enough. Then he moves on to the Herbology written, which is the easiest he has sat so far. The Herbology practical is not much worse, and he finishes them both long before time has expired, enjoying them both immensely.
He returns to a waiting Draco, who had placed trip wards in the corridor to warn him of Harry's approach. Harry had felt them before setting them off, of course, but had no reason to avoid them. He is very glad when he sees the result—his silver god stretched out on the bed waiting for him—waiting to ravage him.
Gruelling, but overall, a coup.
* * *
Ron has stayed away from both Harry and Hermione since the hospital wing. They have seen him, of course, but they have not spoken words, and though they all wish it were different, it is not, and none of them really knows what to do about it.
Harry is too busy being thrilled he's back with Draco. It's been better, this time, than ever before. Harry has been lucid, Draco has been nearly forthcoming. In fact, Draco has even apologised—essentially—for what he did, not waking Harry for the transformation. He has not actually said that he is sorry, but it was so perfectly obvious to Harry when they spoke of it, and Draco admitted that he'd been curious, and had thought Harry would refuse him, and so hadn't really even allowed himself to think on it. He'd simply done what he'd done, and then…well, then he'd regretted it. "It was horrid, Harry. Truly," he'd said. "The magic was tearing you to pieces, then putting you back together again. It was nothing like the Animagus transformation. Nothing at all."
"Still," Harry had replied, and yes, they'd still been in the throes of post-coital bliss, "I would have shown you, had you asked. I'd do anything for you, you know."
"Anything?" Draco had asked mischievously.
"Well the mere fact that I went over to the Slytherin tables and begged you to come back to me should say something about what I'd do."
"I'd hardly term that begging," Draco says doubtfully, "though I will say that you showed exactly the right mixture of menace and haughtiness I would expect from a future Malfoy."
And that had been the start of a good-natured row, because Harry had no intention whatever of taking Draco's name, and Draco seemed quite certain that Harry would. It is, in fact, this very row that Harry and Draco are presently revisiting Wednesday morning at the breakfast table.
At the Gryffindor breakfast table.
"You can insist as much as you like, I will not forsake my family's name. I'm the only one left, you know."
"Well, so am I—"
"You've still your mother," Harry dismisses, taking a bowl of porridge. "Besides, I'm not asking that you take my name." He looks at it more closely and realises it's not oatmeal porridge. "What's this?"
"It's hardly that strange," Draco says, suddenly seeming to realise that Harry is serious about not taking his name. "Why, it's practically unheard of for the wife not to take the husband's name." He sounds completely lost.
"I meant the porridge," Harry says.
"You really don't want to take my name?"
"Draco," says Hermione, all reason and calm, "Harry is not going to be your wife. You can hardly expect him to take your name."
"But…but he wanted to wear a gown."
"I think this is maize porridge," Harry blurts, but he's rather amazed. He thinks he's heard about Americans eating maize porridge. Only they had another name for it. "How am I supposed to eat this?" A pat of butter is suddenly scooped, magically of course, from a serving dish and placed in the centre of his bowl, then followed by a sprinkling of salt and pepper. "Bizarre," he murmurs. But he tastes it. And it is rather…foody. A bit like mash, only not so creamy and more…gritty. And a bit like fried eggs. Still, it's nice enough. He barely notices when the morning post is delivered in a frenzy of hooting and screeching, and eats quite a lot of it whilst still trying to determine whether or not he likes it.
"Oh dear," says Hermione.
Draco cackles, finally getting Harry's attention. A bit of post lands in Harry's porridge and he takes it out, then cleans it without thought. "What's this, then?"
"It's our NEWTs results," Hermione says, and she sounds absolutely terrified.
"What are you doing at the Gryffindor table, Draco?" Harry suddenly realises.
"I've been here all morning, Harry, dear," Draco teases. "But you've been too busy eating your maize porridge to notice."
"I noticed," Harry counters defensively.
"Why aren't you worried about your results???" Hermione exclaims, but softly, at a whisper.
Draco looks over at her where she sits next to Harry and rolls his eyes. "Hermione, I've already opened mine. I already know what my results are. And they're spectacular, of course," and he tosses the parchment at her unconcernedly. "I'll be waiting patiently to see you weep," he says smugly, then sits back, only to insinuate a single unshod foot between Harry's legs. A shit-eating grin graces his lovely lips. Harry's prick takes instant notice.
"Mmm," Harry says.
"Harry, what did you get?" Hermione asks, and if Harry were paying better attention, he would notice that she is near to hyperventilating in her panic. But he is currently more interested in Draco's foot.
"Dunno," Harry says.
"Well open it!"
Draco's foot disappears and Harry is disappointed. He pouts across at his evil, evil fiancé.
"Open it, before poor Granger has a fit," Draco drawls, then looks over at her with some amount of (entirely ironic) pity.
So Harry opens it, and reads it, and is staggered. Pleased, but staggered. "Merlin!" he exclaims quietly and beams up at Draco, then over at Hermione. "I've got all of them! Even History! An 'acceptable' in History!" He is thrilled.
Hermione snatches the parchment from Harry's fingers and scans his scores herself, and though Harry can still scent her terror, she does calm slightly for his sake and smile at him, then embrace him. She whispers, "I'm so proud of you, Harry! You've really pulled it together this term. These marks are astonishing, all things considered."
Harry beams at her once she lets go, then beams at Draco. "Look!" and hands him the parchment.
Draco takes it and reads aloud. "Acceptable in History, Outstanding in everything else," and even Draco sounds impressed. "Not as good as mine, of course, but still worthy of my family. Well done, Harry. The foot returns," and he is as good as his word, returning his foot to play between Harry's legs.
"The foot returns?" Hermione says questioningly, but simply blinks, then decides it's not important. She manages to open her own, then lets out a grand sigh of relief, followed by extreme excitement. "I've tied with you, Draco," she says, and though she would have been happier to have bested him, Harry knows, it's simply impossible to beat all 'outstanding' scores in all the same subjects.
Draco, of course, is surprised, though why, Harry cannot fathom. Draco sits up straight and withdraws his foot, then stands to snatch the parchment away from Hermione. He reads it with a scowl. "Bugger," he says, then tosses it back at her as he takes a seat. Hermione is snickering, then outright laughing, as Draco says, "Well, I'm certain my raw score was higher than yours. I'm certain all of my NEWTs were perfect, while yours certainly were not."
"You are so impossibly arrogant," Hermione says with a wonder that is not at all dampened by the fact that she should have known this already.
"And you're not?" Draco says dismissively. "You're every bit as arrogant as I am—you only feign modesty because you, like all girls, lack a certain necessary quota of self esteem. The mere fact that you could even consider that you might get anything less than 'outstanding' marks on every NEWT is ridiculous, with your intelligence and work ethic. It's really rather annoying, actually."
Hermione must know Draco better than most, because she smiles and takes the compliment that has been given. "I suppose you're right," she says.
"Of course I'm right," Draco agrees and finally begins to eat his breakfast, which has not grown cold, of course, because this is a magic school. "So I was thinking that that Creepy boy really had the best portfolio that we've seen so far, Harry. Wouldn't you agree?"
Harry blinks. Harry frowns. Harry says, "What?"
"That Creepy boy, the one who fucked you and photographed it. His portfolio is outstanding."
Harry can both feel and scent that this is taking a great deal of willpower and control, for Draco to be saying this with such nonchalance. "I haven’t actually looked it through, yet," Harry admits. He'd thought them not getting married, after all.
"Well you should, then, since I think he should be the photographer. Nothing from our wedding should be boring, and his photography is anything but boring."
"Oh…well…all right. I trust your judgment," Harry says.
"Oh no, Harry. You're not getting out of this that easily," and it is Hermione, suddenly blending herself into the fray. "You said you wanted to help pick. You're going to help pick."
Harry groans melodramatically, then flexes his power, and holds his hand out after a few moments, just in time to catch the black-bound book.
"I'm never going to get used to that," Hermione mutters.
"He does have a certain flair for the dramatic," Draco agrees with a smirk and a lascivious twinkle that ameliorates the fact that he's ordering Harry about again.
"Good morning, Hogwarts students, staff," comes Professor Dumbledore's familiar voice, and Harry lets it wash over him as he peruses the portfolio, taking his time. He doesn't really pay attention to what Dumbledore is saying. It's the end-of-term speech, and Harry has heard it many times before. Slytherin has won the Quidditch Cup this year, but it's quite obvious that because of the behaviour of certain students, Ravenclaw is winning the House Cup. Poor Hufflepuff.
Harry couldn’t care less. The photos are fantastic. He turns from page to page, wizarding photos, muggle photos, all brilliant. Some better than others. Some more painful than others. Some more interesting than others. Two very interesting photos of a girl Harry can only assume is Colin's girlfriend. Or was, anyway. A few interesting Quidditch shots that make Harry ache for what he'd once had, and what he has given up to become the Boy Who Murdered the Dark Lord. A stunning shot—but how could it be anything but stunning?—of Draco in flight, all brutal determination and strength. A photo from earlier in the year, of Draco ravaging Harry against a wall in the corridor—back when Draco had had no control whatsoever. Harry snorts—he'd not realised there was photographic evidence of it. It's hot, though—most certainly. And Harry looks as overcome as he knows he is. Colin has captured the scene perfectly, and though Harry can't hear the sounds of Draco's mouth against his neck, up to his ear, then taking his lips; and though Harry can't hear his own moans and gasps and little sighs, he is still getting hard in his robes. He gently turns the page.
The last two are of him—one he has seen, and one he has not but knew had been taken, of course. They'd been fucking for hours, and Harry had tired of that blasted camera. He'd wanted to get fucked again. And without distractions. So he'd put his hand over the lens, and pushed to ward it temporarily from letting Colin take anymore photos. He closes the book again and thinks, This has been the longest—and best—year of my life.
A cheer goes up from the Ravenclaw tables, and everyone else applauds with some degree of goodwill. The Ravenclaws are essentially neutral in school politics, though they tend to side with Slytherin an awful lot for typical Gryffindor tastes. Still, the Gryffindors are cheering mildly because they're glad Slytherin hasn't won, and the Slytherins aren't cat-calling because they're glad the Gryffindors haven't won. The Hufflepuffs are cheering quite sincerely, because they're nice. And what a coincidence, Timmy happens to look over at Harry in just that moment. Harry smiles at him warmly before looking back to his porridge.
He's decided he likes it.
Loose Ends by colibri
17. Loose Ends
That evening, Harry accompanies Draco to St. Mungo's Hospital, butterflies and moths waging some sort of war inside his belly. It's still light outside, since it's so close to midsummer, but that doesn’t make the place any less threatening.
"I'm gonna be sick," Harry moans as they stand outside, trying to get his nerve up to go in.
"No, you're not," Draco says, and with an air of command about him as well—which isn't by any means unusual, of course. "Stop whinging about it."
"She hates me," Harry whispers, because it's true what Draco says, he's not going to be sick. At least, he won't be any sicker than he is now.
"She doesn't hate you anymore. She doesn't even know you. And besides, she's asked to see you, so there's no use fretting about it out here." He takes Harry's hand up again and begins to walk toward the entrance, and Harry follows because it wouldn’t be dignified at all to dig in his heels stubbornly and ruin the line of Draco's robes. Malfoys are very big on dignity, and though Draco has come to terms with the fact that Harry is not taking the Malfoy name, he has absolutely insisted that Harry maintain his dignity at all times from now on. Or, at least in public. It is paramount—that's what Draco had said, 'It is paramount, Harry,'—that Malfoys always maintain an undivided front against the world. That they never row in 'public'. That they never show fear nor weakness of any sort. That they be beautiful and charming and fashionable from the avant, never as followers. (Lucius’s toadying had been a true embarrassment.) That they consume conspicuously, but tastefully. When Harry had asked about all of the times he and Draco had rowed at school, Draco had looked at him as if he were daft and said, 'Harry, in public. Besides, couples are supposed to row at school, before they're married,' and that, as they say, had been that.
Draco throws open the doors with his wand, though Harry has seen him do it wandlessly on occasion, and leads Harry inside as if they own the place. Which they don't, despite the family having donated handsomely to it over the centuries. There is a plaque on the wall, dedicated to honouring the Malfoy family. Harry is grateful the Longbottoms are no longer here. He still finds it very awkward, thinking about what his new family did to them.
Harry follows Draco to the right down a long corridor, then up two flights of stairs and down another long corridor. Finally, a turn takes them to the private wing, where Draco doesn't even slow, nor does he acknowledge the witch sitting at a desk and filing her nails magically. They are past her so quickly, Harry barely has time to register the tangerine colour of her hair and the fact that she wears a black and white striped camisole under her white robes. There are only four rooms in this wing, it seems, and the Widow Malfoy stays in the last room on the left. They stand before it for several seconds as Malfoy gathers himself, then looks at Harry critically. He runs a hand through Harry's hair, then down Harry's left cheek. His eyes soften just slightly, as does the set of his jaw, but Harry thinks Malfoy himself doesn't even know this. Draco moves on to the remainder of Harry's outfit, pulling here and there, then nodding, satisfied, having done nothing, really. "All right, Potter," he says, and knocks on the door.
Which opens on a room bright and cheerful with white, cream, and pastel-coloured chiffon drapes and several hovering lamps. The lamps emit a light much like daylight—some special charm invented by the medical establishment that Draco has told Harry of, to assist patients who are depressed. The room has white furs on the grey stone floor, and all of the furniture is white as well, except for the throw pillows on the sofa, which are also in pastels—green, pink, lilac, yellow. It's all very…feminine. "Draco," says the Widow Malfoy, "and…Harry." It's difficult for her to say. But she is standing, and dressed, and so maintains her dignity before Harry, who may still, in her eyes, be the enemy. She wears lovely robes that match the room, in white and pastel colours, and her hair is elaborately done-up. She looks ready to entertain, not like she's living in hospital.
"Good day, Mother," says Draco and approaches her, bending to give her a kiss on either cheek. "You look radiant today, as always."
"Thank you, Son," she replies, "and soon I may agree again. I certainly look better." She is smiling slightly as she looks up into her son's eyes. She is no longer smiling, however, by the time she looks to Harry. "Harry…" she says, and Harry can tell she doesn't wish to use his surname, but also does not quite feel comfortable calling him 'Harry'.
"Madam Malfoy," Harry says respectfully, and takes a few steps forward, though remaining several arm-lengths away from her. "I agree with Draco, Madam. You are radiant."
And she really is. He has seen very little of her, but she seems full of life now in a way she never had been before. She does not seem very happy, but she seems very alive. And lovely she is, there can be no question. He notes with some interest, now, how the colour of her hair is darker than Draco's. It's a golden blonde, instead of that white blonde Draco inherited from his father. From Lucius.
"Well…I suppose I should be glad that you say it with such sincerity. The eyes tend to have a negative influence on credibility, but I of all people should be able to remain unprejudiced by such things."
It takes Harry a moment to recover from his unexpected pang of longing. Lucius—the memory of him—is still so powerful to Harry. Lucius was Harry's one light during that terrible darkness. It takes him another moment to understand that Narcissa is referring to Harry's eyes, not her own. "I can change them if you wish, Madam Malfoy," Harry offers.
"Why do you leave them thus, then?" she asks.
"It is difficult for Harry to maintain the glamour," Draco offers quickly, "and I did not think you would mind."
Narcissa looks at Harry thoughtfully for several moments and Harry wonders whether Draco has spoken of him at all, and whether Narcissa knows anything about Harry she had not already learnt from her husband whilst he was hunting Harry. "Well, you were correct, Draco. I don't mind. Why won't you have a seat here," she offers gesturing to the sofa behind her, "and talk with me?"
She sits in a comfy chair that faces the sofa from across a low table, and they sit after. Her wand drops to her hand from a sleeve and a tea service appears. Harry thinks she must have come very far in her treatment indeed, if they allow her free use of a wand. Harry catches the cup that floats toward him, and soon they are all primly taking their tea, the silence awkward and pregnant with tension. There is nothing to look at, Harry finds, since searching the room with his eyes whilst obviously avoiding Narcissa is simply out of the question. It's undignified, in fact. And so the surface of his tea bears the full weight of his scrutiny. It is embarrassing, but Harry thinks that the others are doing the same. They're certainly not speaking.
The silence is becoming a noise all its own. Until—
"Well, Harry," she says again after some time, "how did you fare in your NEWTs? Draco apprised me of the difficulty you experienced during your Defence Against the Dark Arts practicum."
"Er…I got all seven that I sat, Madam Malfoy."
"He got 'O's in everything but History, Mother," Draco offers, "including Potions. The best turnaround in a student Hogwarts has ever seen," he adds, as if he is proud of Harry. And truly, he is. Harry can scent the sincerity. It's…confusing.
"Even that Defence NEWT," Narcissa says, as that is the more impressive thing.
"Of course," Draco says dismissively. "Harry bested the Dark Lord; certainly he can defend himself against some WEA tester. He's been casting the Patronus successfully since third year."
And suddenly, Harry gets a flash from the examination—an image of a silvery white beast. It is a wolf, and instantly, Harry knows that it is Draco. Harry frowns slightly. Had he really replaced his father's image with Draco's? What's happened to him?
"Harry, are you all right?" Draco is there, and he has taken the tea and saucer from Harry's trembling hands. Harry accidentally looks up and sees Narcissa watching him, measuring him. She is observing this. They are not in public just now, which means that they needn't show a united front.
"Yeah, I'm all right," Harry says, getting himself under control again. "I had a memory, from the NEWT. It's always strange, when disconnected memories come back all at once like that," and he is all right now. He smiles shyly at Narcissa, at Draco, and hopes that it looks charming. People used to always find his smile charming—or disarming, at least—before the eyes. Now, he is lucky when people will look him in the eye at all.
"What did you recall…Harry?" Narcissa asks, and her use of his short name now is distracting for a moment. So distracting, he barely notices that she is attempting to read him. Of course, there is no way she can get past his defences. Not while trying to be stealthy, certainly.
"I cast a Patronus during the DADA NEWT," Harry says. May as well be forthcoming. He wonders how long she will continue to try to force her way in. Can't she feel that he's blocking her? "It has…changed…since I first began casting it." Harry scowls. "I'm not lying," he blurts. "If you wish to know something, you might try asking me."
It takes her a moment to realise what Harry is saying, then she blushes and grows tall in her seat.
Before she can utter a lie, however, Draco says, "Surely you weren't trying Legilimancy on Potter," and he hides his face in his hand. "Merlin, Mother! He's a highly skilled Occlumens!"
"Skilled enough," Harry mutters, embarrassed.
"Please, Harry. False modesty is never becoming. You held the Dark Lord at bay."
"Right," and Harry sounds utterly daft when he says it.
"Snape says you've a particular talent for mind work like he's never seen, and certainly never expected from you, considering your thoroughly unimpressive beginnings."
"I'd have to agree with the latter part of his assessment, at least," Harry says, but he's thinking about the rest, still. That Snape has complimented him. "But truly, Madam Malfoy—if there is something you wish to know, I'd be more than happy to tell you."
"Did you murder my husband?" she asks and is hard—brittle, even—her back ramrod straight where she sits with hands folded in her lap. The tea is long finished; the cup and saucer stand on the table before her.
"I am one of the causes of his death," Harry says carefully. He knows what she is asking, but he doesn't want for her to hate him forever. He wants to be with Draco, and to have her acceptance, if not approval. "The root cause is more likely Voldemort, for it was his hatred of my parents, and his desire for revenge against me, that set your husband against me. It was…Master Malfoy's work for the Dark Lord that placed him in his position as my jailer and sometime torturer. Still, it was my choice to claim him, and it was his resulting change of heart that led him to fight against Voldemort and the other Death Eaters. We cannot know whether he would have survived had I not taken him, but we know that he did not after I had."
"He had another portrait commissioned," she says, then, a bit of wryness about her eyes—as if she cannot understand the why of it. "Have you seen it yet, Draco?"
"No, Mother," Draco admits, and though he attempts to seem uninterested, it is obvious to both Harry and, Harry thinks, Draco's mother, that Draco has been actively avoiding seeing the new portrait Lucius had commissioned. "I've been quite busy, what with the NEWTs and Harry's lunacy."
Harry blinks and looks toward Draco, surprised that Draco would use him as an excuse for something. It seems unlikely his mother would appreciate the evasion. Of course, Harry doubts very much that Narcissa would have wanted to see the new portrait either. She has a better excuse, though—since she's been locked in this facility.
"I wish to know…Mr Potter…what you intend with my son, and with my family. I don't trust you."
Harry has no idea what he is supposed to say. He doesn't know what the correct answer is. He doesn't even know what the true answer is. He looks helplessly at Draco, though it shows his weakness, but Draco is too busy glaring at his mother.
"I thought we were supposed to be discussing wedding plans," Draco grinds out.
"Well I thought I'd be able to read Mr Potter, and then I wouldn't need to ask him this obviously extremely difficult question." She is glaring accusatorily at Harry now.
"Well I don't trust you either, Madam Malfoy, or I would allow you to read me. So I suppose we're at an impasse."
"Don't trust me??" as if that's simply the most ridiculous thing she has ever heard.
"You were a Death Eater!"
"You've used enough Dark Magic to mark you for life."
"It hardly took much!" Harry counters and they're rowing. He knows it, but he can't stop himself. "Voldemort has me stuck with Lycanthropy and the mere thought of murder was enough to mark me!"
But Narcissa is having none of that. "Have you claimed my son, as you claimed my husband?!" she yells full-voice, all decorum lost in her hysteria. "Why not simply claim me as well!? You're worse than Voldemort. He used only fear and torture to command obedience. At least we could always keep our hatred! You can make willing slaves—puppets—of us all!"
She is panting in her rage as she slowly realises the situation. That she has lost her dignity. That she is standing. That her finger is pointing at Harry. That Harry sits, gaping at her. That Draco sits gaping at her as well. The finger lowers until her hands both rest at her sides uncomfortably, and her eyes have dropped to the table between them. She slowly regains her seat, settling carefully into it. Her scent is turning toward fear. Does she truly believe Harry is worse than Voldemort?
"I haven't claimed Draco," Harry murmurs, because it is, for some reason, very important that he say that aloud. "I claimed Lucius, but I've claimed no one else completely. I influenced…" It's still difficult to say. "I influenced Rita Skeeter, but only weakly, and I've not used it since. I won't use it." But wouldn't he? If the situation were dire, wouldn't he? "I will never become Voldemort. I do not desire that type of power." And that’s true. He enjoys being a powerful wizard—but to exert power over others—over other witches and wizards—is simply not something that appeals to him. "I only wish to be close to Draco, and for us to start a family. I only wish to not be alone any longer." And he realises that it's true. And he realises that he's not really afraid to let Narcissa inside. He could always force her out if he wanted, but… "I'll let you read me if you wish. Both of you," because he doesn't want to open himself to Narcissa, and then have Draco take advantage of the situation. And Draco could never resist. He knows Draco.
He lets his shields fall and feels naked and exposed. It takes more energy to keep himself vulnerable like this than it does to shield himself—the latter has become so automatic, now. He thinks of Draco and attempts to relax, for he is perfectly capable of manipulating what they see, but he doesn't want to manipulate it too much. There is no need for him to open his entire mind to them, but everything that relates to Draco…that he can do.
And it feels strange, as the two of them plunge into his mind and skim about simultaneously, focussing on different strands of consciousness, on different streams of thought and memory. Draco gets ensnared in a memory of sex, while Narcissa races through Harry’s childhood memories of being bullied by Draco and his thugs, leading to those of being bullied by Dudley and the Dursleys. Draco wallows in one pornographic scene after another, while Narcissa leapfrogs from pain to pain, withdrawing from Little Whinging and ending up at 12 Grimmauld Place. Unfortunately, from memories of Sirius, it is all too easy for her to skim along to his death, and trigger Harry's despair. He gasps and loses all control.
Sirius plunges through the veil, and Harry's mind convulses. Draco is hurled from Harry's pleasure to the same pain Narcissa is reliving, then they are plunged together into a numbed haze. A sound like dampened moans, cries, far away and seen through smoke or fog. Rough clay brick barely noticed beneath a cheek. Warm wetness viscously creeping across skin, down into Harry's cleft, leaving a cooling trail against pulsating heat—the residual pain of his willing violation. Eyes opening to a wad of folded pound-notes on the glistening pavement, growing soggy in the drizzle. His dirty hands reach down to retrieve them—to feel the reality of them—and another wrenching.
The paper has become thin, now, and white, as he rolls it round the pungent-smelling herb. The taste of glue against his tongue, and the sharp sting of smoke drawn into his lungs. The slight tug of carbon dioxide poisoning trying to force a breath, and light dizziness, disorientation, relaxation. He passes the blow on and smiles. Forgets. Accidentally makes eye-contact with…someone. Some bloke. He doesn't know. Shouldn't have. But he can't be arsed. Blonde hair and blue eyes, dark bags beneath, Lucy, yes, beside him, telling him a story. About…about…he giggles. She giggles. She kisses him, blow on her tongue, and stout, and…a hand is forcing its way into his rectum. Slowly, yes, and with lube, yes, but the first time, and god, Stu, where are you? And the blow is not nearly enough, never enough, never, but there hadn't been anything stronger at the fest that he'd wanted, no, only cocaine and speed and what does he want that for? To be awake for days? To be awake at all? He's so tired. And it hurts, inside his arse and higher, his intestines, oh god it hurts…
A wrenching and Harry is gasping with cramps—trembling and moaning and sweat-drenched, cold hands holding him down, a cool cloth across his forehead. Nausea to consume the world, and the knowledge that just one little balloon could fix this. Just one little hit could end this pain. Lovely, lovely brown, and he would not be dying, dying here on Stuart's dilapidated sofa, in the one-lamp murk of his ratty room. But he hasn't the quid, and Stu won't trade. Stu hates him. Stu wants him to kick, so he can start bloody chipping. I hate you, Stu, I hate you I hate you I hateyouI…
Love you, Stu, fucking him, lovely sofa against his face, soft, warm glow of the lamp, his veins brown, no pain, no thought, no memory, no dreams, no dreams, no dreams…no dreams.
* * *
Harry awakens in Draco's arms to the sound of breathing and beating hearts. He scents fear and guilt and satisfaction. He scents himself and Draco and Narcissa. He aches in head and body and heart. He feels ill in a way that is both physical and mental.
"I never believed, when he told me," Narcissa says calmly, seated again in the comfy chair, her dignity more armour than her robes, by far. "I never believed you had fallen so far. I never understood how you'd hidden from him so successfully."
"Neither did they," Draco murmurs, his eyes closed, his head leaning against the back of the sofa, even though he still holds Harry. He seems tired. Perhaps it was draining, reading Harry. "They never understood how you hid yourself, Harry. I never understood it." He opens his eyes, now, and looks across at his mother.
"I didn't think about it," Harry says—no, whispers. His voice is hoarse. He's exhausted himself. Narcissa summons a glass of water and hands it to Draco, who then feeds it to Harry. Harry thinks that now would be the perfect time for Narcissa to kill him. Perhaps he'll be dead in a few minutes.
"If I'd planned to kill you, I would have done so while you were unconscious," Narcissa says, and Harry quickly re-establishes his shields. "Likely prudent," Narcissa agrees.
"I never want to go in there again," Draco says.
"You seemed to have been having a fine time of it."
"Yes, for a bit," Draco agrees. "And then—hell. Mother has a talent for finding the very worst in everyone," and he smiles sarcastically at her. "I'm uncertain what you've proven with this. Harry's had a difficult childhood and a bad year on the street. What's that to do with our wedding?"
"Foolish boy," Narcissa scolds, obviously disappointed in her son, though Harry can't fathom why just now. "History is always necessary for establishing motive. Context. Besides, I sorted through a great deal before I accidentally triggered that…slide into depravity." She says it with some distaste, but likely less than, say, McGonagall would have shown.
"That was accidental?" Harry asks weakly, though he feels he's keeping a sense of humour about it all. It is rather funny, actually, that she'd done that accidentally. A bit like stepping in dog leavings on the pavement.
"It's hardly very useful to trigger such a cascade of memories and be dragged into someone's mind in that fashion. They know you've done it, and you can no longer control what you see. You can no longer choose."
"Fair enough," Harry agrees, though he's really too tired to care in any real sense. It will be filed away, though. "Never got very much training in Legilimency," he admits. "More defensive."
Narcissa nods. "Severus always was the practical one. Besides, he's a far better Occlumens than Legilimens. His eyes always give him away. One always knows when they're being read by him."
"One assumes one is being read, even when one is not," Draco corrects. "Because he's creepy. So, do you trust Harry now, Mother? Can we discuss the wedding? Or will you insist on insulting my fiancé with further wallowing in his childhood trauma? Perhaps you’d prefer he perform circus tricks?"
"Watch yourself, Draco. This attitude does not become you, nor does it befit a Malfoy. It is my privilege and responsibility, as the head of this family, to test your fiancé and deem him worthy. You are fortunate I am entertaining the thought at all. I've seen no evidence of this potion that you insist can be concocted to allow the two of you to bear an heir. It has certainly never been done in our family before. The Malfoys have always been partial to sham marriages," the last for Harry's sake, with a bit of mean sarcasm added in for flavour, "and adultery."
"Snape and I have been working on it," Malfoy says with enough arrogance to signal nerves, but not enough to say he's lying. "We need only test it. The theory, however, is sound."
"And then I shall see my only son with child. How fabulously strange life has become." She doesn't seem overly pleased, but there is more than a mere hint of amusement in her tone and mien.
For once, Harry doesn't argue. After all, they've discussed this to death, now, and Draco is right: They simply have no way of arranging things so that Harry can carry the child. The shape-shifting seems likely to be too stressful for a growing baby, and there is very little chance of Harry not passing the Lycanthropy, as he would be sharing his blood. There seems very little chance, however, that the disease will be passed on through his genes, since he was not born with it, so…. There it is, and there it shall remain.
"Wedding first," Draco insists, and he sounds as if he truly is beginning to lose patience over this.
"Have you made any decisions then, dearest Draco, about the wedding?"
"I believe we have, yes," Draco says. "We've picked our photographer, and the location."
She seems surprised, but not overly so. "And?"
"We should like to have the ceremony at Hogwarts," Draco says, "and the photographer is one of the current students. Creevey is his name."
"A student? Surely—"
"He's extremely talented, I assure you, Mother. Besides, he has photographed us many times before, and is familiar with the location as well. You should trust me to choose someone who will not embarrass the family, Mother."
"And Hogwarts? Why not at the Manor?"
"Because Hogwarts is safe. And it's relatively neutral territory. And it's large and well-warded. Besides, the Great Hall is larger than any of our rooms, and I think having the wedding out-of-doors would be entirely too pansy."
Harry snorts, but regains his composure in half a second. Almost quickly enough to go unnoticed, but not quite.
"Please tell me you disagree," Draco threatens.
"Of course not, beloved," Harry agrees, hastily. "And I will not wear a frock."
"That's right," Draco remembers and turns back to his mother. "Both of us will wear formal robes. There will be no gowns involved."
"Well, that's nice I suppose."
"Judging from your prior reaction when Harry was wearing a gown, yes," Draco reminds her.
"Circumstances were…very different, then," Narcissa says, as if in excuse. Harry can't really guess what she means by it, though. Everything was different then. But Harry had still looked ravishing in those gowns. Including the one that she had seen him in.
"Harry, stop pouting, love," Draco says.
"'M not pouting."
"Harry looks lovely in a gown, but he is also lovely in formal robes, and it would be better if we not make him the woman in the ceremony. Especially if I'm to carry the child."
"I'm not arguing, Draco," Harry reminds him.
"So, those are the decisions that we've made. We can use the Hogwarts kitchen staff, of course."
"Our own shall assist them," Narcissa breaks in, deeply in thought, now. "Hogwarts's are a bit lacking in…discipline…I fear."
Harry has less than no interest in this particular aspect of the planning. He would rather be revising History, he thinks. Or…well, perhaps not rather, but…. Certainly cleaning toilets. Yes. With magic, of course. He'd far rather be cleaning all of the Hogwarts toilets with magic, gliding from one to the next, perhaps taking the occasional peep inside, to see if anything interesting is going on. The Patil twins ravishing Hermione, for instance. Now, why hadn't he ever thought of that before?
"Harry!"
"Yes!" Harry replies, startled right out of his reverie.
"We're leaving, love."
"Right, yes," Harry says and stands beside Draco, blushing scarlet, of course, but what else is new?
"Do you know anything of your fey ancestry, Harry?" Narcissa asks suddenly, much to Harry's shock. He's already off-balance.
"Er…no, not really, Madam Malfoy."
"I should like to do a bit of research into your genealogy, I think. Something to pass the time before they release me from this purgatory."
"Don't be shocked, mother, when you find muggles," Draco quips.
"I assure you, there will be no shock involved." Harry still finds it impossibly strange to think of anyone calling his own mother 'mudblood'. "Good night, darling," she adds and gives Draco a kiss on either cheek, which he has to lean down for. "Good night, Harry," and she offers kisses to Harry as well, and though they are not nearly so affectionate, Harry thinks that Narcissa Malfoy trusts him, now.
* * *
"Merlin, Harry. Don't ever give me a shock like that again."
"Good evening, Mr Malfoy."
Draco pays no notice to the witch who has wished him well. The one with the striped shirt is gone now, and has been replaced by a matronly old witch who knits instead of filing her nails. "Good evening, Madam," Harry offers as they rush by, and wonders whether she is confused by his answering. "A shock like what?"
"Your perfectly ghastly memories, of course," Draco says, as if it's completely obvious and entirely Harry's fault that Draco has had to experience them.
Harry scowls. "Well, it's you chose to delve in then, isn't it? I only offered because I knew you'd have done it regardless and I didn't want you feeling guilty afterward."
Draco doesn't say another word until they are, once again, outside. It's deep, deep twilight now and all colour has been washed out of the world—as if grey watercolour has been poured over everything. "You could have warned me, is all I'm saying."
That is not, in fact, what Draco had been saying, but Harry supposes he had had a point with his previous statement, and so Draco is back-pedalling. "Well, you'd never before seemed particularly ignorant about what I'd been doing year last. I mean, you've certainly taunted me with it in the past."
"Well knowing that you were a rentboy and knowing…that…are completely different, aren’t they."
"No, not really," Harry says, confused. What had Draco expected life to be like? "It was better than here," Harry offers with a shrug.
"Better than here??"
"Well, not now, certainly," Harry says hastily. "But before…well, it was rather horrible here, actually. What with everyone dying, and Snape, and you. And Voldemort. Everything's been different since I came back. Life is really quite wonderful now," he adds with a little smile, and draws closer to Draco. Close enough to touch, to lay hands on Draco's hips. "I wish Sirius could have seen me happy," Harry murmurs and looks into Draco's slate-grey eyes.
"You don't look very happy, Harry," Draco whispers.
Harry can understand, though he couldn't put it in words. "I miss him terribly. Whenever I'm happy, I miss him, and it pulls a veil of melancholy over everything."
"It happened in the room as well," Draco says. "When you spoke of my father."
Harry has to remember to breathe, and has to work not to pull away from Draco. "I miss him as well," Harry says, though it also comes out a whisper. "There's been too much death, Draco."
"Still, it's a bit fucked, isn't it? That you're mourning my evil bastard of a father."
"But I'm not—"
"I know you're not! You're mourning the perfect bloody Gryffindor father you turned him into. The one you loved! The one you made love with! Your life is so fucked, Potter!"
"Why are you doing this, Draco?" Harry is at a loss. What can he do? This is his life. This is the posture they are in, and this is where they must begin. "I want to be with you, but I can't change what's happened. I can't change anything—nothing at all! I'm a freak, a murderer, a werewolf, and everyone knows it! I'm marked for life! I've no family of my own, because they've all been murdered! All of them! What do you want from me, Draco? What can I give you? Because I'm trying, and I want to make this work, but I can't be anything but what I am!"
Draco is hiding his face in his hands and radiates embarrassment. "Can't we just Apparate back to Hogwarts?" he mutters.
Harry groans, but he does it, Apparating back to the main road outside Hogwarts' gates.
Draco appears a moment later, then begins walking, slowly, back to the castle. Harry follows silently. "I didn't mean it the way it sounded," Draco says, as they near the Quidditch pitch where it looms off to the right. Draco moves off of the main road, toward it. "I didn't mean to blame you for how fucked your life is."
"Merlin help me," Harry mutters, but he follows Draco, and soon they're there. At the Quidditch pitch. Draco heads straight for the broom shed, and soon tosses Harry a broom. He supposes Draco no longer wishes to talk, because flying is not exactly conducive to having a conversation.
Draco closes the shed and mounts the broom he has chosen for himself. "Come on, then, Potter. Up we go," and his smirk is visible even in the gloom. But only for a moment, because then he's up and away, and Harry is mounting quickly to follow.
Harry doesn't fly nearly often enough. He's no idea how, really, he's managed without it. Likely all the gliding about he does. Sometimes he'll glide as fast as a school broom can fly, though he's never been able to push himself to the speeds his Firebolt could attain. He's having little difficulty catching Draco up now, but that is only because Draco wishes it. As soon as he does, Draco goes into a steep dive, accelerating away and leaving Harry far behind. A game of catch me if you can, it is, and Harry finds that he is very much in the mood.
He has nearly caught Draco up when the gleaming silver hair pulls out of its dive and soars off to the right, then curves quickly round until he is out of sight, and Harry is left struggling to come out of his dive and find Draco again, though he can no longer see his target. And it has nothing to do with his vision. In fact, his superior senses do help him, but this time it is his hearing, for he hears Draco snickering behind him a ways off, and would not ordinarily have been able.
He is soon in the chase again, and he follows Draco well outside the bounds of the pitch, over the forbidden forest, then back round, passing over the loch and soaring high, over the castle's turrets. Harry's sadness sloughs off of him like a snake's old skin, and he is left gleaming and fresh, young again. Happy. And he looks before himself at the exuberant boy who is turning loops and corkscrews now for Harry's amusement, and mimics the movements himself, revelling in the mild vertigo and adrenaline spikes. And he thinks about Sirius, and sends him his love, and hopes that he is with James and Lily somewhere, and that they are all smiling at him, and happy that he has found his own happiness again.
"Hey, Harry! Come here," says Draco, who's stopped now and simply hovers, several hundred metres above the ground, a riot of stars in the heavens above him.
Harry joins him, a goofy smile on his face he knows, because he can feel it, and says, "What, then?"
"Closer," Draco says, and has that evil glint in his eyes that only Harry could see in this darkness. As a courtesy, Harry conjures a hovering globe of light to illumine their faces. Draco's smile widens a bit, and the evil becomes more…lascivious. Yes, that's the word. "Closer," he says again.
"Can't get any closer, Malfoy," Harry murmurs, for they're hovering facing each other, now, and to each other's left. Their left thighs are touching.
"I think you're mistaken, Potter," Draco says, and is suddenly pulling Harry's mouth against his own, with hands behind Harry's head, carding through his hair, moaning his desire.
Harry wholeheartedly agrees. And the breathlessness of it all is incomparable. But…practicality has its merits. He pulls away just far enough that he can speak, and says, "Draco, I'd really like for us to fuck now."
Draco moans and nods and pulls Harry into another kiss.
"This isn't helping, Draco," Harry manages after pulling away again.
"Fuck," Draco says weakly. "Can't we fuck up here?"
"Even I'm not that insane, Draco. If I lost concentration for even a moment, we could fall."
"You could catch us again," Draco murmurs against Harry's neck as he kisses and kisses. "You're so sexy on a broom."
"Draco, I'm always sexy. As are you…. But…we can fuck on the pitch if you like," Harry offers. A compromise.
Draco stops dead. "Yes! Yes, we'll fuck on the pitch!" he agrees breathlessly, and is off like a shot.
Harry is right behind him, and then beside him, and then they are racing straight to the pitch, pushing every last bit of speed out of their brooms. Harry imagines he can feel his robes heating from the friction of the air.
They barely land and have the brooms in the shed before Draco has Harry pressed against the shed's outside wall and is tearing his robes off and biting at his neck. It's a cool night, but welcome against Harry's overheated skin. Only, the grass on the pitch isn't so comfortable as all that, and so Harry transfigures a rectangle of it just large enough for the two of them into a blanket.
Draco groans and redoubles his work on Harry's neck. It's painful, in a thoroughly pleasurable way. "You should do that more," he rumbles deep in his chest, and against Harry's neck.
"Do what?" Harry asks, too breathless, really, to speak, and too horny to much care. But if Draco is bothering even as they're doing this, the least he can do is respond.
"Magic," Draco says. "Feels very nice."
Harry wonders if he's ever noticed what it feels like when Draco does magic. But he can't recall, really—can't recall much of anything.
"Cast Divestio," Draco whispers into Harry's ear, causing a chill from Harry's scalp to the soles of his feet.
"I'm already naked," Harry says, and hadn't even noticed it happening.
"On me," Draco murmurs, a laugh in his voice. Normally he'd be impatient, or call Harry daft or something. It's a nice change.
Harry does, and Draco moans again, his clothes melting magically from his body. It's a different effect than usual, since they're not standing, and Harry doesn't feel like having Draco lift arms and legs and things to accommodate the clothing. Now they simply flow off and reform themselves, then fold themselves into a neat little pile. He charms his own scattered clothes to fold themselves as well and join Draco's. "All right?" he asks, then.
"Very, yes," Draco agrees, and then Harry loses track of time and space and distance.
Until he is wrenched from the depths of pleasure by the sound of a voice. No, the voice. "Oh bugger," he says into the blanket, and tries not to panic as Draco pistons inside him.
"Oh it's so good, Potter. Just…let…but…if you need to…. " He slows. "We can turn over," he offers, panting.
"Wha—?" Oh, of course. Draco thinks Harry's not getting enough stimulation. "No, someone's coming," Harry explains
"Is it important?" Draco asks, picking up his pace again and sinking into bliss.
"It's Ron."
"Not important," Draco decides and pulls Harry up by the hips until he's standing on hands and knees and Draco is engaged again.
"He's not alone," Harry explains. He can just barely hear what's being said now. 'It's perfect, and no one will be there now. Not right before the summer hols.' Seductively. "He's bringing a date," Harry whispers.
Draco laughs breathlessly, but then gulps loudly and is gasping, fucking Harry hard enough that he has to hold Harry's hips to keep him from collapsing. "Yesss…" Draco hisses, then comes, pushing himself even deeper as he milks those final moments of pleasure for all they're worth.
But it's too late to get away, now, and Harry casts invisibility over them both just before he sees Ron entering the pitch. With Timmy. "What the fuck??" Harry murmurs, shocked.
Draco pulls out and lies down on the blanket with a sigh. "That was brilliant," he says. "Give me a second and I'll get you off."
"'M not in the mood," Harry murmurs, completely distracted. "What the bloody hell is he doing here with Tim??"
"Who gives a twat?" Draco says and means it wholeheartedly.
"Shut it, right?" Harry whispers. "They're coming."
"Shield us, then," Draco says.
"I want to hear what they're saying."
"Make it a one-way shield," Draco says and rolls his eyes, then pulls his wand from his pile of clothing and casts it himself. "And why, exactly, do you care?"
"Whatever," Harry says, because he's too busy for this just now. Outside Draco’s bubble, Ron and Timmy are headed toward the shed.
"Did you mean to fly, now?" Timmy asks doubtfully.
"What else?" Ron asks, utterly clueless.
"I thought you brought me out here for us to fuck."
Draco cackles and Harry is mortified. So is Ron, by the look of it. And he should be, because Harry knows that Ron had brought Timmy out here to seduce him, but it appears that Ron has just about lost his nerve. "Oh, this is precious. Ickle Ronnikins is trying to play big bad homo with the next generation."
"Shite," Harry groans. "This can't possibly end well."
"Er…" says Ron.
"I've heard lovely things about…certain pieces of your anatomy," says Timmy.
"Where has he heard those things from?" Harry mutters. Draco is in fits of ecstasy.
"Er…have you?" says Ron, his voice cracking just slightly at the end.
Timmy sinks to his knees. The view is perfect, of course. Harry could not have paid for a better display. It couldn't have been staged better. Timmy swallows Ron to the root, which isn't difficult, since Ron is far too nervous to be erect now.
That does not last long.
And now, Draco is no longer laughing. "Bloody hell," he says.
Harry gets up and starts to get his kit back on. They need to leave. Right now.
"He's fucking massive!" Draco cries accusatorially.
"Get your robes back on," Harry hisses, then throws Draco's clothing at him. He lays the blanket back flat again, then reverses the transfiguration. The grass matches perfectly.
"Harry, Ron fucked you with that massive cock, didn't he?!"
"Of course he did," Harry says with great irritation. "He could hardly fuck me with yours."
"I'm going to kill him!"
"What the bloody hell does the size of his bloody prick have to do with anything??" Harry yells back, a pang of adrenaline shaking him as he realises that yes, Ron and Timmy are just beyond the charm Draco has erected. Harry doesn't know how long that charm will hold, either. He waits only long enough for Draco to get his robes back on, then takes them up in a glider and pulls the invisibility charm with them, though he breaks the sound charm.
"I can't believe Weasley, of all people," Draco seethes, "has a cock as large as mine."
Possibly larger, Harry thinks, but does not say. He says nothing, in fact, the entire trip back to his rooms, and once they're both inside, he wards them with a particular vigour.
"Tease," says Draco.
"Fuck off," says Harry.
"Well if you're so bloody jealous about it, why not go and break in??!" Draco explodes. "He's only with that ankle-biter because he couldn't get you!"
"I don't want him that way," Harry growls, and it sounds quite impressively growly, which is bad, since it means he's leaning toward his Animagus form without meaning to. It snaps him into awareness, though, and he takes a deep breath. A calming breath. I'm only being jealous. It's only jealousy. It's not important. He moves slowly to the bed and sits down, then casts a multitude of Lumos orbs to hang in the air and brighten the room.
Draco moves, a bit carefully, toward Harry, then sits down beside him on the bed. He doesn't say anything—only sits there quietly and breathes along with Harry. Most importantly, though, he is not angry. In fact, his scent is more contented than anything else. He sits there beside Harry and does nothing.
Harry can't help it, he smiles a little and revels in Draco’s warmth. And then he snorts quietly, as a little laugh escapes. What in Merlin's name was he thinking? Why does he care if Ron is fucking Timmy? Or whomever Ron decides to fuck? As long Ron's not taking Draco away, what should Harry care?
"Would you like to top me, Harry?" Draco suddenly asks, and Harry can't tell at all why Draco is asking this.
"I don't think it worked out so well last time," Harry says, playing along.
"I've had practise since, yeah?"
"Fabu, with Voldemort."
"True," Draco admits. "He wasn't the tenderest lover."
"Nor the most patient, I suspect."
"Exactly, yes," Draco agrees. "And yet I managed."
"Apparently so, since you sit here, today, alive and relatively unscathed."
"Only my psyche bears the scars."
"We are quite a pair," Harry agrees. "But I'd rather bottom, if it's all the same to you."
A few moments of silence, then, "Yeah, all right," Draco agrees.
It's a good arrangement.
(Chapter 17 continues…)
Loose Ends (continued) by colibri
Chapter 17: Loose Ends (continued)
Ron awakens to a banging on his door and wants nothing less than to wake up just now. He feels like he's been beaten with a broom. Oh, and then that broom fucked him in the arse. "Go the fuck away," he mutters and puts the pillow over his head to drown out the ruckus.
Ron awakens again, several seconds later, when the pillow is pulled off of his head and the room's brightness sears his optic nerves to hard, black coals. "I'm blind, now," he says with the perfect sincerity of melodrama. "I hope you're happy."
"Thrilled," says a voice that can only be Harry's, and everything seems just a little bit more dire. Or, at least, miserable.
"Great, so how about you fuck off now and leave me in peace?"
"I'd rather we make it up with each other and resume our friendship."
"Well I'm tired of doing what you want all of the time, so now you can just get the fuck out."
"That's strange, because I'm tired of doing what you want, so I think I'll stay here and have a row with you instead." Harry groans then and releases a burst of magic that somehow dims the room. Ron supposes it has something to do with curtains. "Ron, I miss you. You're one of so very few friends I've got, and you've been my closest friend for ages. You and Hermione, Ron. Why are we tossing this?"
"Harry, I've nothing in the world I'd less rather do than discuss this with you. I'd rather be swotting."
"That's easy for you to say, now that it's all finished. Ron, what have I done that's so terrible? So horrid that you can't bear to be around me??"
Right at this moment, Ron hates Harry so much, it makes his face hot and his fingers itch. He hates Harry so much, he can feel Harry's skin pressing against bone until it bursts in a rain of blood. But he can also taste Harry's lips against his own, sweet as honey, sweet as coming in Harry's tight arse. "You've chosen our worst enemy over me, and worse," Ron says without thinking, because if he were thinking, he would know that he should say nothing at all, "when I truly put myself out there—pitted myself against that evil git to compete for your…hand or whatever—I lost to him. I lost and he won. You."
"Ron, it's fundamentally unfair for you to do this," Harry says, his too-lovely face screwed up in concern, in pain. "It's unfair of you to blame me for not being as attracted to you as I am to Draco." Oh it hurts, so, to hear these words. Ron does not want to hear. He does not want to listen. But the words keep falling from those perfect lips, "It's unfair of you to blame me for loving you and preferring Draco as a lover anyway," a rain of acid to eat through his skin and dissolve his heart. "I fell in love with him while you were still straight, I'm not going to change all of that history because you suddenly decide fucking blokes is all right. And besides, we're best friends, Ron. The only thing we won't be sharing is sex."
"Well perhaps I'd rather you shared nothing with him!" What is he saying? He doesn't know—he doesn't want to know. He only wants to scream and scream and scream, and then he wants to fuck Harry. "I'd rather you had nothing to do with either of us, than that you choose him over me, Harry!"
"Why do you have to make this about choosing him over you, Ron?" Harry cries, and such a tragic figure he makes, lovely as field of poppies in summer, black eyes in shining faces. A single tear spilling over onto his cheek. It's funny, Ron thinks, how one misplaced feature can turn someone so inhuman looking. It's even funnier, how Harry can still be so beautiful. Why is Ron fixating?
"I can't see how it could be about anything else," Ron says, baffled. And not only by Harry's question, but by the entire situation. Why is he doing this? Why can't he simply get over that Draco is a git? He'd been all right with it before; before he'd decided to try for Harry himself.
"Why can't it be about you and me having a friendship that's lasted seven years, through hell and worse, and has no reason to end now? Why can't it be about that love, and that caring, and that understanding, and that closeness? Ron, we've grown up together, and there was never any need for us to fuck before."
"Yeah, well we've got nothing else in common now, do we?" Ron blurts. "I mean, I'm about to take my Ministry job, and you're about to become a bloody housewife! We won't be going on night raids to Honeydukes, nor will we be playing Quidditch—"
"We could play Quidditch," Harry interrupts. "I'm still small enough to play seeker. I could train up again."
This leaves Ron a bit stumped. He'd rather thought Harry had decided he no longer liked Quidditch.
"I didn't have time this year, because I had to revise. I had to be ready to face Voldemort. Now there is no more Voldemort." Harry shrugs, smiles a sad little smile. "What's an hour or two a day devoted to exercise? Certainly a bloke's entitled."
Ron can't help it, he's smiling, even though his heart is broken. Or something. Perhaps it's his ego smashed, and his heart is all right. And then he's reminded. "Er…" he says, and can't go any further. He can feel his face heating, though, and Harry's lovely, lovely face cocking to the side before asking--
"What is it?"
"Well…er…." Oh, heating isn't the word. He must be red as a beet!
"This isn't about Timmy, is it?" Harry suddenly asks, all out of the blue, and Ron can't help it. His mouth gapes. How could Harry know that?? "I was on the pitch night last," Harry goes on to explain when he realises he's right. "I cast invisibility when I heard someone coming. When I saw it was you two, and what you were doing, I left."
"You saw…?" Ron is mortified. He'd been awful. He'd had no idea what he was doing. With Harry everything had simply flowed. And he'd been on top, which he was quite accustomed to. With Timothy, everything had not flowed, and there had been entirely too many elbows and knees. And Timothy was a top as well, and though he'd offered to bottom, it had been reluctant, and Ron had felt…intimidated, somehow. And he'd thought 'how hard could it be?' And if Harry enjoyed it so very much, it couldn't be all bad, right? And if he was really going to present himself as bisexual, he'd have to know. And besides, if Draco could do it….
"I only saw him drop to his knees and begin to…ah…service you."
Ron nearly collapses with relief, only he's still in bed. He's reminded that his arsehole still hurts. "Oh," he says shakily.
"So anyway, if it makes you feel any better, I was very jealous."
Ron can't help the surprise. He is surprised. And then a little offended. "You can't keep everyone as your property, Harry."
"I know," a touch defensively, but only a touch.
"He is lovely, though."
Harry smirks. "I was more jealous of him."
It shouldn't take Ron as long as it does to figure out what Harry is saying. But once he does, he realises why it's taken so long. It simply doesn't make a lot of sense. "Well you could bloody well have me in a heartbeat!"
"No, I can't, actually," Harry says, all reasonable and matter-of-fact. "I'm with Draco and I love him. That means I can't really have you anymore, even if I want to. You seem to have this idea I find you unattractive, but I really don't. I think Draco looks like a god, and most would agree with me. That has no bearing on whether or not you're attractive in your own right. You and I simply do not have the perfect balance of facial features that Draco has. You, however, have honed your body to perfection," and…is that a hint of want in Harry's face? Yes…yes, Ron thinks it is. Oh he's ever so pleased. "Unlike I. It's amazing to me that people find me compelling at all," Harry finishes.
Ron smirks. "Yeah, well, you're a bit of a girl in that way," he offers and stands. Slowly. With a bit of an involuntary grimace. Which Harry immediately notices. Ron can tell exactly when Harry realises what's caused the pain. His eyes go wide and disbelieving. Ron offers no explanations, and Harry does not ask. "You do have that perfect balance of facial features. And the wrap-around effect is quite nice."
"Wrap-around?" Harry blinks. He's likely still thrown from the revelation of the moment before.
"Yeah, you're so tiny, like a girl. It's very sexy to feel so large and manly whilst fucking you, to wrap you round my prick." He waggles his eyebrows suggestively and is gratified by Harry's quick blush. It lends credence to Harry's view of the situation, really. Harry is in love with Draco, and he's trying to be monogamous, but he's still attracted to Ron physically. And he loves Ron as a friend. Ron thinks he might be able to live with that, actually. "I suppose you're worth keeping about, then," he offers.
Harry's smile is slow but radiant, and suddenly, he is embracing Ron, arms thrown round Ron's neck, head beneath Ron's chin, turned against Ron's collarbones. He and Harry fit so well together. It reminds him of Hermione, who is nearly the same height as Harry. Slightly taller. They'd also fit so well together, before Ron had become obsessed with having Harry all to himself, and had taken the first opportunity to be single he could get. It hadn't been fair to Hermione. It hadn't been fair to anyone, really. Not that he and Hermione had been perfect together, but they'd had great fun together, and the sex had actually been superlative—not as forbidden and new as with Harry, but certainly satisfying in a very real and lasting way. And Hermione had been willing a good lot of the time. Most of the time. Ron knew enough to know that was rare. At least, that was what he'd heard from Charlie.
"What are you thinking so hard about?" Harry murmurs against Ron's skin.
Ron can't help it, he feels a little chill, but it's all right. At least they both know…well…everything about each other, essentially. They're certainly not hiding anything. "Hermione," he says.
"She misses you as well," Harry says quietly.
"She can't be thrilled at the way I treated her."
"We've not really discussed it," Harry admits. "It was all a bit awkward, since you went from her to me. She was a bit peeved at me."
Ron sighs. "I know the two of you are speaking," because Ginny had told him.
"Yeah, but we don't mention you if it can be at all avoided."
"Ah." He spends several minutes more, simply enjoying the feel of Harry against him. The solid reality of him. The warmth. And he kisses Harry on the crown of his head, because there is affection between them as well as love, and murmurs, "Best friends."
Harry nods, but does not seem in a hurry to leave the circle of Ron's arms.
"So we'll play Quidditch?"
Harry nods again.
"I'll attempt to get on with Draco."
Harry squeezes him harder and says, "Thank you," before letting go again, and stepping away. He smiles and the room seems brighter, though Ron suddenly wishes the curtains were no longer drawn. He loves the way Harry's hair shines so blackly, though he misses the green eyes, sometimes. "I'll want you about a lot of the time, if possible. We could visit daily. Perhaps Draco and I will move into the city for a bit, and you'd be close by."
"If you're attached to the floo network, it's hardly difficult to make the trip."
"Of course," Harry agrees. He doesn't know whether Draco wants to be attached to the floo network, but either way, it will be easy enough to keep in contact with Ron.
"What's Draco going to be doing, anyway?"
"About the same thing his father did—sit on various committees and try to run everything. He's taking a Ministry position as well," hence the discussion of possibly moving into the city.
"What!?" Ron is shocked. And dismayed.
"He got top marks, Ron. And nine NEWTs. He could have any position he wished. Is there any question he'd take any but the most prestigious?"
Ron groans and runs his hands over his face, trying to come to terms. Draco Bloody Malfoy at work every day. What a misery. Though, at least, it is extremely unlikely Draco will be in the Department of Magical Accidents and Catastrophes with him. Knowing Draco, it is either Law Enforcement or Cooperation. They're really the only two glamorous enough for a Malfoy. "He won't be in my division, will he?"
"No, he's starting in the Department for Control and Regulation of Magical Creatures," says Harry and smiles shyly. He looks almost embarrassed. But Ron supposes he can understand why. It appears that Draco has taken the position for Harry's sake. "He's going to establish a programme for mass-producing Professor Snape’s Wolfsbane Potion and providing it to witches and wizards infected with Lycanthropy. The potion is still very custom at this point, requiring blood of the recipient during its brewing, but he'll be researching ways to standardise it. He will also be working on cures and the like. It's a Potions-focussed position, but requires excellent Charms and Transfigurations work as well. He's ideal, really, since he's a strong all-round wizard."
Ron is surprised…extremely so. That Draco Malfoy is taking a position so…selflessly? Though perhaps not. It affords a good opportunity for renown if he is successful. Still, it irks Ron a bit that Draco will be working so obviously for the betterment of Harry's lot, while Ron will do nothing of the sort. And it irks Ron even more that Harry is completely barmy over Draco and the fact that Draco has chosen this field for him. "Well, I suppose that's a good thing for werewolves everywhere," Ron admits, grudgingly.
Harry takes it well, though. "I certainly hope so. It's an awful lot of work brewing that bloody potion for myself every few months, and I can afford it. Not only that, I can avoid difficulty by simply shifting into wolf form. I lose my mind, but at least I don't become violent."
Ron is nodding. Harry has the right of it, of course, and Ron truly hopes that Draco can devise a method to mass-produce the Wolfsbane Potion, and even more so that Draco can find a cure for Lycanthropy altogether. Remus Lupin would also benefit greatly from it. "Hey, does Lupin know?"
"About what?" Harry asks.
"About Malfoy taking that position."
"I doubt it. I certainly haven't told him. I haven't known that long. I don't think he made the decision until a few days ago."
"You should tell him. I think he'd be pleased."
"I will," Harry says and smiles. "I've had some small difficulty keeping in contact with him, but…well, hopefully, relations will normalise with everyone once they grow accustomed to Draco."
"See, I'm not the only one who has difficulties with Draco!" Ron says triumphantly.
"No, Ron. And it's not as if I blame anyone. But Draco has changed. I mean, he's still got the same personality, of course—"
"He's still a bloody git," Ron interjects, for clarity's sake.
"—but his heart is in the right place. Arrogance is not evil, and though he's done some things most of us would find unsettling, I'd say that I've done worse things, and people are willing to forgive me. He played just as large a role in dispatching Voldemort as I did—"
"Hey, not quite," Ron disagrees.
"A huge role, Ron! And I believe he deserves forgiveness in return, and for sloughing off a great deal of the prejudice he was taught as a child, as well. He never looks down on me for not being 'pureblood', whatever that means, and he certainly doesn't think of Hermione as anything but a first-rate witch. His bigotry was more parroting than heartfelt, I think…though his nastiness was very real," with a smirk.
Ron heaves a great sigh. Merlin, what is Harry getting himself into? "Well I'm here for you, mate. No matter what happens, right?"
"Thanks, Ron. But I think you'd better get clad and make it up with Hermione. I mean, it’s not that you have to become an item again, but…losing her friendship at this stage?"
Ron doesn't even need to think to answer that question. He'd never really meant for them to break up in the first case. He'd simply been so fixated on Harry, he'd been grateful for the opportunity at the time. Oh what hard lessons, in love. "I'll speak with her," he agrees. "I love you, Harry," he whispers, then, and takes a final embrace. In this room, alone, they can pretend it's all right to say these things aloud, and that they can touch so freely. It is a good thing, to take full advantage of these moments.
After that, Ron watches Harry leave, then makes his way to the bath, where he wanks thrice in succession before finally deciding he's got Harry out of his system and is ready to face this final day.
And the Sweetness of the Leaving by colibri
Chapter 18: And the Sweetness of the Leaving
The day passes in a haze of preparation for all of Hogwarts's students. At breakfast, things are nearly back to normal. Draco sits at the Slytherin tables and maintains his dignity without difficulty. He rules the Slytherins through charisma and will alone, since so many of them have decided he's actually a 'bloody Gryffindor twat.' Harry supposes that Draco's great magical power and extraordinary intelligence help as well. And, of course, his wealth.
At the Gryffindor tables, Harry, Hermione, and Ron sit together again, and it is obvious that Ron has had his talk with Hermione as well, for they smile at each other warmly, and though they do not seem to be together again, at least the friendship appears to've been mended.
Otherwise, Harry spends the day mostly alone. Back in his rooms, it takes Harry all of five minutes to determine which things he no longer wishes to keep and destroy them. Another ten, and he is finished packing. He spends an hour in meditation, then another three going through his Charms and Transfigurations exercises. He skips lunch in favour of calling Dobby and asking for a private lunch in his rooms. And once Dobby returns, Harry asks him to have a seat on the bed, which he only does after much cajoling and a bit of trickery.
"So, Dobby," Harry says.
"Does Harry Potter not like the food Dobby has brought today?" Dobby asks with great concern, wringing his hands and throwing glances at the tray which sits untouched on Harry's writing table. Harry sits in a comfy chair before Dobby.
"Dobby, I was hoping you might be interested in coming with me."
"Of course, Harry Potter!" Dobby agrees energetically, leaping up from his seat on the bed again. Harry decides to give up that battle for lost. "Where is we going?"
Oh. "No, Dobby. I meant I want you to come and live with me after I leave Hogwarts. You would still be paid, of course, but Draco and I will need competent assistance in our new place, when we set it up. Madam Malfoy will remain at the Manor, but we will not."
Dobby is obviously torn, between his loyalty to and affection for Harry, and his terror and general mistrust of Draco. Harry knows this. But it's not entirely realistic, since Draco really wants nothing to do with Dobby, and will certainly not be torturing the house elf or anything else of that nature. "And I was also hoping to study magic with you."
Now Dobby is completely confused. "But Harry Potter is a great wizard! Dobby is only a little house elf. What could Dobby teach Harry Potter?!"
"House elf magic, of course," Harry says reasonably. "Dumbledore has made a study of house elf magic in the past. I'd like to do the same. And I will have some time, until I find something else to do, and until Draco and I have our first child."
"I don't know…Harry Potter…" Dobby says slowly, worriedly. "Draco Malfoy is not such a nice employer."
"I can assure you, Dobby, that Draco will be an exemplary employer. You know that I'd never allow him to mistreat you. You will be treated with the respect due any employee, whether house elf or human. That I promise you. And think what a wonderful opportunity it would be—to lead your own staff. To train your own staff. And to teach me. I am generally considered an apt pupil."
Dobby still looks torn, but he says, "Well…if Harry Potter would like for Dobby to come to the new Malfoy household, then Dobby will come…."
"It shan't be a new Malfoy household," Harry says with authority he does not entirely feel. "It shall be a Malfoy and Potter household. Completely different, Dobby. I swear to you."
"All right, Harry Potter. Dobby will come. When does Dobby leave? And where does he go?"
"You can accompany us when we go, or you may wish to remain here until I send for you. We've waited a bit long and so we'll have to remain at the manor until we find a place of our own. Would that be preferable?"
Dobby nods carefully. "Dobby will remain at Hogwarts until he receives word from Harry Potter," he says. "Excuse Dobby, sir, but…how much will Dobby be paid?"
Harry can't help but smile. "How much do you wish to be paid?"
"Well…Headmaster Dumbledore pays Dobby an entire galleon per week, and time off as well…." As if he thinks this more than Harry is willing to pay. And while Draco may not be happy to pay Dobby at all, it's certainly not a hardship, to pay him a galleon per week.
"Would you like the same pay from us?" Harry says.
"Oh yes Harry Potter!" Dobby says and bounces up and down in his excitement.
"It's agreed, then," Harry says and holds out his hand.
Which Dobby stares at dumbly.
"Shake hands, Dobby, to seal the agreement."
Dobby's huge, lamp-like eyes turn to stare into Harry's as he slowly, tremulously, holds out his hand. Harry clasps gently, noting the warm, calloused texture of Dobby's otherwise paper-thin skin, the prominent bones beneath, the petite size. "Thank you, Harry Potter," Dobby says, then disappears, taking his hand with him.
* * *
"You should be a Slytherin tonight," Draco is murmuring in his ear, and really, he is tempted. Granted, he is always tempted by Draco's voice in his ear, no matter what it is suggesting.
"I'm not going to be a Slytherin, Draco," Harry manages breathlessly. It's unnecessary anyway, since no one would ever expect Harry to become a Slytherin at this stage.
"I wish you'd sit with me at the Feast."
Ah, that’s what this is about. "We have the rest of our lives together," Harry says with some amusement. Draco never appreciates it when it seems that Harry is laughing at his expense, but he only gets slightly petulant this time, instead of storming off in a great, raging funk. "I think Blaise and Pansy would weep if I joined you at the table. Or perhaps expire of a heart attack or aneurism."
That gets a smile from Draco. A small, evil one, but a smile nonetheless. "I suppose that is true.” He's looking very handsome in his school robes, as he always does.
Harry looks down at his own, still all black from his fit not so long ago. He sighs.
"I think you should leave them that way," Draco says with a little shrug. "They bring out your eyes." They both manage to keep a straight face for all of three seconds before snorting.
"I think I don't need any assistance drawing attention to my eyes, thank you."
"Still," Draco says hastily. I think you should leave them," now with all seriousness. "You're the first student to truly disregard the Houses in ages. You've bridged Gryffindor and Slytherin for Merlin's sake. And if we count those you've bedded…"
"Right, do let's not ," Harry says pre-emptively. Reminding Draco of Harry's bed-partners is never a good thing, in the grand scheme.
"Well, it really only leaves Ravenclaw, and they're rather neutral, aren't they?"
"You did," Harry says. He restores his shirt to its original white, but he leaves his tie black. "Compromise?"
Draco nods. "A good one, yes. Since using all of the colours would be a bit…common."
"Agreed. Let's go, then."
So they make their way to the Great Hall, and for once, are not fashionably late. They're a minute or two early, in fact. Still, Harry's friends are all here already, and he is pleased to receive a little kiss on the cheek from Draco before they separate, each to their own tables.
"Oi, mate! Your tie!" Ron offers standing and embracing Harry heartily before sitting again.
"Yeah, a compromise. Draco thought I should be all in black, but I restored the shirt." He receives an embrace from Hermione as well, then waves hello to the remainder of the Gryffindor table. It feels so strange, suddenly, to be here, and be one of the oldest. To be missing all of those who've gone before. To know he will never return here as a student again. To see all of the young faces he's not even got to know. They're only minimally familiar to him—they could be from any house. Harry has truly lost touch with this group, who were supposed to have been his family throughout his Hogwarts years. Nothing ever works the way it's supposed, for the Boy Who Lived. But that's all right—everything's worked out for the best. He truly believes that.
"Welcome, everyone, to the Leaving Feast!" Dumbledore says, and the room quiets. Above, the sky is still light as they are rapidly approaching midsummer. How can it be, that they are already most of the way through June? Harry has already reached majority, and soon, he will be considered a fully qualified wizard as well.
"I realise everyone is hungry, but I'd like to say a few brief words before the meal.
"It's been a difficult year for most of us here at Hogwarts, and for many outside these walls as well. Many have lost family or friends. Many have suffered sleepless nights of worry and fear, or days of hurt and betrayal. And yet here we sit, survivors to the last, and with great lessons learnt that shall never leave us—that shall add to our stores of wisdom, and aid us in any trying times to come.
"But I will be forthright, here, and make brief mention of the sorcerer who called himself Lord Voldemort, but whom some of us once knew as Tom Marvolo Riddle." The Great Hall falls so silent now, it seems almost as if everyone had been shouting during the Headmaster's speech before. Someone sneezes and several students jump. Someone whispers a hasty, "Bless you," before Professor Dumbledore continues. "He was a student here at Hogwarts, as I'm certain most of you already know. He was a student of great talent and ambition, sorted into Slytherin—as many talented students have been, both before and after," the last added hastily, as if to ward off the inevitable whispers—those whispers that seem always to comment on the generally evil natures of those sorted into Slytherin House. As if Hogwarts would have allowed the house to continue at all, had it not served some worthy purpose. "Tom Riddle was a highly talented wizard, and a highly tormented boy—the only son of a witch and a muggle man who was fearful of the wizarding world, young Tom learned early the meaning of hatred and fear. He learned to hate the muggles who would never accept him, and he learned to hate the wizarding world that would not separate itself from the muggle world strongly enough.
"Tom Riddle became obsessed with proving himself worthy, but nothing could fill the void left by his parents. Nothing could replace that love and acceptance he was denied. Not his vast magical talent. Not the respect and responsibility he received as a Prefect, then Head Boy here at Hogwarts. Not the immense power he amassed after leaving Hogwarts and working with the Dark Arts. The void at his centre only grew, becoming a deep, dark chasm of despair, hatred, and death.
"Tom Riddle is gone now, and so is Voldemort, but I mention him because we are all wizards here, and we are all here to learn, and to train. We are all here to ensure that our world is full of good, decent people first, and talented, well-trained witches and wizards second. We all have weaknesses to overcome, and strengths to encourage. It is important that we learn to consider others when we make decisions, that we learn empathy, and that we think through to the consequences of our actions."
Harry feels like this speech is meant for his ears alone. He hears a litany of dire warnings aimed directly at him. He knows that he has crossed the line into evil far too many times already. He knows that, on several occasions, he has behaved toward his fellow students in a way that was inexcusable. He has been petty and mean, rude and crude. He has stricken fear into the hearts of children. He has utilised his own power to influence others. He feels absolutely dreadful about it all, now, and this despite the fact that he's already had a bit of this conversation with the headmaster, from when he was behaving even worse than he has been lately.
Harry only realises that the headmaster has finished his speech when Ron lays an arm over his shoulders and leans in close to whisper, "Harry, you should eat." Harry has his face buried in his own hands but, at least, has refrained from weeping at the extent of his own doom.
"Draco is trying to get your attention, Harry," Hermione murmurs.
Harry turns his head about to attempt to pick Draco out from across the intervening tables. It's not that difficult. He's had loads of practise. Draco looks slightly questioning, perhaps a bit worried, but he simply waves and awaits Harry's response. Harry can't help but smile slightly, despite his mild depression, and send a whisper along for Draco's ears only. "I miss you already," he sends, and once it arrives, he sees Draco smirk slightly and mouth, Later.
Still, Harry remains a bit down, and his appetite suffers, as usual. He does not notice his friends sending each other worried looks across the table. He knows immediately, however, that it is bad news when Hermione speaks. "Er, Harry?" she says, and Ron groans into his hands. "I realise this isn't the best time, though I'm uncertain what has got you so very down."
"I'm not down," says Harry and attempts to plaster a smile upon his face. He's still not crying, at least. He can scent their distress and knows that his lie is not working. "I'm simply a bit…er…disappointed in myself," he says and realises that yes, this is true, and it sounds much better than 'depressed'. "I haven't exactly been the nicest person this year."
"What?" says Ron, completely surprised by this.
Hermione, of course, is not so quick to dismiss. As always, she thinks before speaking and has understanding on her side first. "Harry, that speech was not meant for you," she says with great authority.
"It most certainly was," Harry disagrees with complete certainty, and he makes eye contact.
"Well it certainly wasn't entirely for you, nor was it only for you. We must all of us guard against bitterness and hatred, Harry. That you are more powerful than most does not mean that you are more evil than most, nor more prone than the rest of us are."
"It simply means I have greater potential to become the next Voldemort. And, why look," and Harry knows he's getting bitchy, but Merlin, what's he to do?? "I've already gone irreversibly down that path of darkness and everyone can see it!"
Hermione goes from righteous to guilty in a heartbeat. "Ah yes, well, about that," she says.
Harry groans. "It's irreversible, isn't it."
"I'm afraid it is. I've been completely unable to find any research that supports the possibility of reversing the effect. It may exist, of course, but no one has written about it. That said, it tends to be considered a dire warning to whomever it afflicts, and so the great wizards of the time tend to wish to teach these individuals a lesson. There's been little incentive for reversing it."
"Except by those who have been afflicted," Harry mutters.
"Well, yes, but they have rarely been the wisest minds. There is hope, Harry. It's simply not as straightforward as I'd hoped it would be."
"As we'd all hoped," Ron mutters, then sighs. "I miss the green eyes."
"Ron," Hermione hisses.
"Well I do," Ron says defensively, "but I've been perfectly enchanted into impropriety by the new ones as well, so it's not so important as all that."
Harry can't help it, he snorts at the utter ridiculousness of the situation. That he's been intimate with Ronald Weasley. In the end, the most important thing is that he's not become the next Voldemort; and the world has been rid of some very intolerant people—that is a good thing. The memory of Lucius Malfoy is redeemed. Narcissa is healing quickly. Harry still has his friends, and he's about to be married, to the man who was once his nemesis and now is…well, utterly devoted to him, actually. He hides a little smirk behind his hand and does not look back. He is feeling much, much better now, and it reminds him that there is a little surprise awaiting everyone in the Great Hall. He'd almost forgotten it himself, which isn't good, since he's the one supposed to make it happen.
And, as if summoned, Harry feels a tap on his shoulder. It is Draco's signal. Harry smiles, then flexes his power.
"What was that?" Ron asks. "What did you do?"
"Nothing dangerous," Harry assures, then beams across at Hermione.
"I'll never get used to that," Hermione mutters.
And then the sound of them—like a thousand fluttering butterflies on paper wings.
"Harry…?" and Ron's eyes are simply enormous.
Harry can't help but giggle. Then there they are—a great, fluttering rainbow bursting into the Great Hall. Hundreds of bits of shimmering coloured paper, each making its shimmering way to a witch or wizard and landing, gracefully, before them—or plucked out of the air with distaste, as in Professor Snape's case. Harry smirks because it’s so very predictable.
"It's certainly original," Hermione says, then looks up at Harry, her own bit of shining, crimson-coloured paper held between two fingers in her right hand.
"So you've finally made some decisions, eh mate?" Ron says, and he is making a valiant attempt at good cheer. Harry thinks it's mostly working.
"Indeed," Harry agrees, and picks up one of the little invitations that has landed before him. It gleams a lovely indigo colour. "Date and time, location, staffing, even wedding photographer," the last, a bit smugly.
As if cued, Colin Creevey faints right out of his seat, and they can hear little Dennis squeaking about how his brother is going to be photographing the wedding of the century, interspersed with pleas for his brother to wake up and light little slaps to the face.
"What's left, then?" Ron asks.
"Wardrobe," says Hermione, then looks over at Harry. "Am I correct?"
Harry nods. "I shall have absolutely nothing to do with that, however."
"Likely a good idea," Hermione agrees.
"I think you always look smashing," Ron says with some confusion and a bit of embarrassment thrown in.
"Why thank you, Ronald Weasley," Harry says, "but that is not because of my own fashion sense, I can assure you."
"Yeah, it's mostly your lack," Hermione says sweetly to Ron.
"Thank you for that, 'Mione. Really," Ron bites back.
"The rest is my perfect willingness to let others dress me," Harry adds, "and that tradition shall continue through our wedding. Draco is dressing the entire wedding party. Which means, of course, that both of you will be required for fittings at some point in the near future. Be forewarned—when Draco comes calling, he will brook no argument from either of you."
Both Hermione and Ron stare at him, then, for what seems like several minutes of silence, though it can't really be more than a few seconds before Hermione speaks. "Did you say a fitting?"
"Are we going to be in the wedding party, Harry?" Ron asks.
"Well, I suppose I should have asked first," Harry says, "but we're certainly flexible enough that we can accommodate you, if the date is infeasible."
"Has Draco agreed to have us in the wedding party?" Hermione asks carefully.
Harry can't even begin to fathom what the difficulty is. "I'm certain I don't understand what you mean."
"Have you and Draco discussed who is going to be in the wedding party?" Ron asks.
"Well, not everyone, certainly, but mostly, yes." Do they honestly believe that Draco wouldn't wish them in the party? "Besides, I would never have allowed that Parkinson cow to attend if he'd had anything to say about you two. But I think he rather likes both of you, actually."
"Hermione, possibly," Ron mutters.
"Fair enough," Harry agrees. "But we both agree that you shall be my best man."
"This is all very romantic, Harry," Hermione finally interjects quietly and sincerely, "but how, exactly, is this going to work? I've never even seen a wizarding wedding before—much less a wedding with two males. What on earth are we going to be doing?"
"Well how should I know?" Harry admits. "I've never seen a wedding at all," and smirks. "It can't be all that complicated. Thousands of people get married every day—they can't all be geniuses."
"Oh never mind," Hermione groans.
Ron snorts.
"Don't worry, 'Mione," Harry offers, by way of conciliation, "there'll be a rehearsal. I think the main thing is that we shall all look lovely for the cameras, and you'll, of course, have no difficulty with that whatever. So, no need to fret."
Flattery always works on women—sometimes it simply needs to be more subtly delivered than others.
(chapter 18 continues…)
And the Sweetness of the Leaving (continued) by colibri
Chapter 18: And the Sweetness of the Leaving (continued)
Friday morning, the Hogwarts students all pile onto the Hogwarts Express, a certain air of manic excitement and fearful depression colouring everything—an effect Harry has noted in the past, but has never understood before now. It is the knowledge that everything is changing irrevocably, irreversibly, that paints the world now, and all pastels have been traded for their bold, saturated cousins.
Harry is one of the last to board, mainly because Hagrid is weeping and crushing him to a pulp and making him promise to visit and write and visit and…yes. And Hagrid will see him at the wedding of course, since Hagrid will be arranging the animals. But Harry does finally pull away—it being much easier since he knows he will see everyone again so soon—and board, trailing his belongings behind himself magically as he searches for—ah yes. There. He can't help but smile as he deposits his baggage appropriately, then enters.
"I'd ask what took you so long, but that was quite painfully obvious," Draco offers with a smirk. The compartment overlooks the platform where Hagrid is still standing, waving at them. Ron and Hermione turn to the window and wave intermittently. It appears they've been doing it since Harry left Hagrid.
"He's going to miss us," Harry offers, then sits down across from Ron and next to Draco.
"And we're going to miss him as well," Ron adds.
Draco holds up his hands in placation, "No argument here," he says, before changing the subject back to what they'd, presumably, been discussing prior to Harry's arrival. "So it's not set, yet. There's simply no set tradition of homosexual marriages, so we'll have the privilege of making up our own rules."
"Well, I'm certain it will be lovely," Hermione offers, though it is clear to Harry, at least, that she'd be more comfortable if she could research the matter and come up with an answer.
"What say you, Harry," Draco begins, and Harry can already scent the mischief brewing, "to having Jezebel as wedding party costumier?"
It makes Harry's stomach turn and must show on his face.
"You can't still be upset about that little fib," Draco says, though he sounds ever so slightly contrite.
"There was a reason it took me so long to trust you," Harry mutters, really just recalling it himself.
"It had to be a surprise, Harry. Otherwise, they never would have believed all of your reactions thoroughly. And besides," he is cajoling and Harry is trying not to be affected, "we were successful and it's all finished, now. Yes?"
"She made me feel uncomfortable," Harry says, as if he needs more reason than that he's already given. As if they want everyone in full fetish drag at the wedding—this is obviously not serious. But now he's curious. "It was a very strange feeling that I couldn't make sense of, actually."
"Ah, well, I suppose it was instinctual on your part. She's had a lot of experience dealing with customers of every persuasion, but you've been relatively sheltered in that respect."
"Sheltered?" Ron asks, as if he can hardly believe his ears.
"Yes," Draco agrees patiently. It's a beautiful thing, Draco's newfound patience. "Jezebel is a vampire. Vampires and werewolves tend to have a…negative reaction to each other."
A vampire, Harry thinks and is both surprised and, somehow, not. It explains everything. Why her skin had felt so strange, why her scent had been so unsettling, the grace of her movements. And the veil, Harry supposes.
"A vampire, living in society?" Hermione asks, suddenly bursting with curiosity.
"Well, in Knockturn," Draco says, as if to say it's not really society, if it's Knockturn, and he's right. Knockturn is for the outcaste, the criminals, the addicts. Harry is grateful he no longer feels like he belongs there, even if the rest of the wizarding world would place him there. The Lycanthropy. The eyes. But that is not for the Boy Who Lived to Murder Voldemort. "But she does well, there. She has a…rabid following."
Harry snorts, shakes his head. "Draco is not serious about her dressing the wedding party," Harry assures his friends. "She might do a nice kit for the two of you, though," he offers, then, at a conspiratorial whisper, "fetish gear."
Ron's mouth drops open and he blushes scarlet. Hermione is not better off. But it is she who speaks. "Beastly."
"You needn't use them together," Harry offers, relishing their discomfiture. There's something relaxing about the rhythmic chugging of the train about them, the pulsing through the seats.
"Yes, I'd guess Timmy would absolutely adore you in leather," Draco says, completely nonchalant as he looks out the window. It's unclear to whom he's directed the comment, and it's entirely clear that both Ron and Hermione think it's to them.
Harry is intrigued. "Hermione? Have you dabbled? With Timmy?"
Now she is truly horrified. "No!" and she is adamant. "Of course, not!"
"Then why the reaction?" asks Draco.
Ron thinks he's off the hook. He's relieved, but is now very curious, scrutinising Hermione severely.
"No reason," she offers hastily.
"Fantasised a bit, of course," Draco offers sympathetically. "He's a moderately attractive bloke, though I hear he's really not for women at all."
It takes a moment for Hermione to get over her embarrassment enough to actually hear what Draco has said. And then her brow goes up. "I beg your pardon?"
Harry is completely fascinated. Riveted. Ron's gone mauve.
Draco turns from the window to drill her with his gaze, as if he's not laughing on the inside. Laughing so hard he should be crying and rolling about on the floor. But he's awfully good at masking reality. "Timmy," he says, "is quite gay. At least as gay as our little furry friend here," he offers, then turns to Harry and smiles beautifully. Harry shakes his head in awe.
Hermione, as everyone knows, is not a dunce. She can have difficulty seeing things when she truly doesn't want to see them. But when it's presented for her as plainly as this. Well… "You weren't speaking to me," she says with dawning realisation. "Ron."
Ron is hiding his face. His deniability is no longer plausible. "It was after Harry," he admits, so that she knows he wasn't cheating on her. It's respectable that he doesn't even try to deny it.
"You had sex with Timmy," she says, simply baffled. "I didn't honestly believe you were even queer." An admission.
"I didn't enjoy it very much," also an admission.
"But you enjoyed it with Har—"
"That's quite enough," Harry interrupts with a large smile. No need to remind Draco of past indiscretions. "I wonder when you all are starting work."
Both Ron and Hermione are infinitely grateful for the subject change. "Monday," Ron says. "Mum and Dad are helping me move into the flat tomorrow." Ron's parents had found a place for him in London proper, near the Ministry.
"I'm taking a month," Hermione says brightly, with just a touch of nerves. She's taking an apprenticeship position with the International Magical Office of Law. She hopes to be able to represent those accused before the Wizengamot. "I still need to find lodging," she explains with a sigh. "I'll be living with my parents whilst I search."
"Perhaps Harry could assist you," offers Draco magnanimously, though Harry thinks it's more to get him out from underfoot whilst Draco's mother finishes preparations for the wedding and Draco works not-so-stealthily on the potion. That bloody pregnancy potion that's proving so difficult. Draco's only staying at the manor for a weekend before going back to Hogwarts in order to work with Snape. Sometimes Harry feels guilty about not helping, but they don't seem to desire his assistance. They've said nothing, and Harry hasn't pressed. It's a shame, though—if only he knew where to begin, he might be able to work on it as well.
"That's hardly necessary—"
"I think it would be loads of fun," Harry offers with a shy smile. He has no experience flat-hunting, but it would be nice to spend some time with Hermione. And, to be honest, some time away from Narcissa. She still makes Harry nervous.
* * *
The trip to Platform Nine and Three Quarters is so uneventful as to be anticlimactic. Quiet conversation and a few tearful goodbyes are the order of the day, and once they all disembark, Harry follows Draco to where Narcissa stands, glamorous blonde hair elegantly coiffed, couture robes in Slytherin green, and that Malfoy hauteur. In her hand is Lucius's cane. Harry manages to maintain his dignity, but only through a great deal of exertion. He accepts the air-kisses deposited by Narcissa near his cheeks, then stands back to allow Draco to speak with his mother. It is with both trepidation and relief he notices the Weasleys approaching. He asserts his eye charm, for courtesy's sake.
"Harry! Look at you now, luv!" says Mrs. Weasley as she enfolds Harry in her strong arms and squeezes him against her ample bosom. "Filled out a tiny bit, then?"
"Yes, Mrs. Weasley," Harry says dutifully.
"Still entirely too full of bones, though," she frets, but it's only because she's sad to see her babies moving into the real world and leaving childhood behind. Harry has always been like another of her children—as if she didn't have enough of her own. Harry smiles into her hair, but she soon steps away again. "Come, Harry," she says with a quick look toward Narcissa and Draco, who are studiously ignoring this little drama, discussing their own news to give Harry privacy. It's courteous of them. "Arthur needs to see you off."
They walk toward the rest of the Weasley clan, but before they get there, they slow and Molly asks, "Are you happy, Harry?"
It is obvious to Harry what she is asking. It's the same thing all of the others had asked him. Is he absolutely certain he wishes to be with Draco? To become a Malfoy? "Yes," he says simply, because the truth would not calm her at all. The truth would help no one. How can he tell anyone that he's frightened witless? How can he say that every so often, he thinks about the wedding and his stomach drops into his feet and he's certain he's going to vomit? He loves Draco, and that alone is terrifying. Inside, he is gibbering with fear. "I'm so very excited. But it's difficult, leaving Hogwarts. It's been the best part of my life."
Molly smiles sadly, then nods her understanding. Harry doesn't know whether she understands the reality or simply the line he's given her, but it hardly matters. He's made his decisions now. They move along again to the other Weasleys where they are standing and visiting with the Grangers. Another round of embraces and tears and general pleasantries ensues, and it is a full ten minutes before Harry floats gracefully back to the Malfoys, hoping his own air of dignity is up to snuff. "We'd best disappear soon, before someone else decides to commandeer me," Harry mutters.
Narcissa declaims a few words, then holds out the cane. Harry and Draco each grab hold of their trunks with one hand, the cane with the other, and the portkey is activated.
It is time for Harry's next life to begin.
[AN: The title of this chapter is taken from a song lyric by incomparable Canadian singer/songwriter Jane Siberry. The song is a duet with another incomparable Canadian singer/songwriter, k.d. lang, “Calling All Angels”, and is featured on Jane Siberry’s album When I Was a Boy, as well as in the soundtrack to the 1991 Wim Wenders film Until the End of the World.]
Fin. |
|